The Complete Poetical Works of Percy Bysshe Shelley Volume II

Percy Bysshe Shelley

This page copyright © 2002 Blackmask Online.

http://www.blackmask.com

  • EARLY POEMS [1814, 1815].
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1816.
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1817.
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1818.
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1819.
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1820.
  • ODE TO NAPLES.
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1821.
  • POEMS WRITTEN IN 1822.

  • Produced by Sue Asscher asschers@dingoblue.net.au
    OXFORD EDITION.
    INCLUDING MATERIALS NEVER BEFORE
    PRINTED IN ANY EDITION OF THE POEMS.
    EDITED WITH TEXTUAL NOTES
    BY
    THOMAS HUTCHINSON, M. A.
    EDITOR OF THE OXFORD WORDSWORTH.
    1914.
    ***

    EARLY POEMS [1814, 1815].

    [The poems which follow appeared, with a few exceptions, either in the volumes published from time to time by Shelley himself, or in the "Posthumous Poems" of 1824, or in the "Poetical Works" of 1839, of which a second and enlarged edition was published by Mrs. Shelley in the same year. A few made their first appearance in some fugitive publication—such as Leigh Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book"—and were subsequently incorporated in the collective editions. In every case the editio princeps and (where this is possible) the exact date of composition are indicated below the title.] ***

    STANZA, WRITTEN AT BRACKNELL.



    [Composed March, 1814. Published in Hogg's "Life of Shelley", 1858.]

    Thy dewy looks sink in my breast;
    Thy gentle words stir poison there;
    Thou hast disturbed the only rest
    That was the portion of despair!
    Subdued to Duty's hard control, _5
    I could have borne my wayward lot:
    The chains that bind this ruined soul
    Had cankered then—but crushed it not.

    ***


    STANZAS.—APRIL, 1814.



    [Composed at Bracknell, April, 1814. Published with "Alastor", 1816.]

    Away! the moor is dark beneath the moon,
    Rapid clouds have drank the last pale beam of even:
    Away! the gathering winds will call the darkness soon,
    And profoundest midnight shroud the serene lights of heaven.

    Pause not! The time is past! Every voice cries, Away! _5
    Tempt not with one last tear thy friend's ungentle mood:
    Thy lover's eye, so glazed and cold, dares not entreat thy stay:
    Duty and dereliction guide thee back to solitude.

    Away, away! to thy sad and silent home;
    Pour bitter tears on its desolated hearth; _10
    Watch the dim shades as like ghosts they go and come,
    And complicate strange webs of melancholy mirth.

    The leaves of wasted autumn woods shall float around thine head:
    The blooms of dewy spring shall gleam beneath thy feet:
    But thy soul or this world must fade in the frost that binds the dead, _15
    Ere midnight's frown and morning's smile, ere thou and peace may meet.

    The cloud shadows of midnight possess their own repose,
    For the weary winds are silent, or the moon is in the deep:
    Some respite to its turbulence unresting ocean knows;
    Whatever moves, or toils, or grieves, hath its appointed sleep. _20

    Thou in the grave shalt rest—yet till the phantoms flee
    Which that house and heath and garden made dear to thee erewhile,
    Thy remembrance, and repentance, and deep musings are not free
    From the music of two voices and the light of one sweet smile.

    NOTE:
    _6 tear 1816; glance 1839.

    ***


    TO HARRIET.



    [Composed May, 1814. Published (from the Esdaile manuscript) by Dowden,
    "Life of Shelley", 1887.]

    Thy look of love has power to calm
    The stormiest passion of my soul;
    Thy gentle words are drops of balm
    In life's too bitter bowl;
    No grief is mine, but that alone _5
    These choicest blessings I have known.

    Harriet! if all who long to live
    In the warm sunshine of thine eye,
    That price beyond all pain must give,—
    Beneath thy scorn to die; _10
    Then hear thy chosen own too late
    His heart most worthy of thy hate.

    Be thou, then, one among mankind
    Whose heart is harder not for state,
    Thou only virtuous, gentle, kind, _15
    Amid a world of hate;
    And by a slight endurance seal
    A fellow-being's lasting weal.

    For pale with anguish is his cheek,
    His breath comes fast, his eyes are dim, _20
    Thy name is struggling ere he speak,
    Weak is each trembling limb;
    In mercy let him not endure
    The misery of a fatal cure.

    Oh, trust for once no erring guide! _25
    Bid the remorseless feeling flee;
    'Tis malice, 'tis revenge, 'tis pride,
    'Tis anything but thee;
    Oh, deign a nobler pride to prove,
    And pity if thou canst not love. _30

    ***


    TO MARY WOLLSTONECRAFT GODWIN.



    [Composed June, 1814. Published in "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    Mine eyes were dim with tears unshed;
    Yes, I was firm—thus wert not thou;—
    My baffled looks did fear yet dread
    To meet thy looks—I could not know
    How anxiously they sought to shine _5
    With soothing pity upon mine.

    2.
    To sit and curb the soul's mute rage
    Which preys upon itself alone;
    To curse the life which is the cage
    Of fettered grief that dares not groan, _10
    Hiding from many a careless eye
    The scorned load of agony.

    3.
    Whilst thou alone, then not regarded,
    The ... thou alone should be,
    To spend years thus, and be rewarded, _15
    As thou, sweet love, requited me
    When none were near—Oh! I did wake
    From torture for that moment's sake.

    4.
    Upon my heart thy accents sweet
    Of peace and pity fell like dew _20
    On flowers half dead;—thy lips did meet
    Mine tremblingly; thy dark eyes threw
    Their soft persuasion on my brain,
    Charming away its dream of pain.

    5.
    We are not happy, sweet! our state _25
    Is strange and full of doubt and fear;
    More need of words that ills abate;—
    Reserve or censure come not near
    Our sacred friendship, lest there be
    No solace left for thee and me. _30

    6.
    Gentle and good and mild thou art,
    Nor can I live if thou appear
    Aught but thyself, or turn thine heart
    Away from me, or stoop to wear
    The mask of scorn, although it be _35
    To hide the love thou feel'st for me.

    NOTES:
    _2 wert 1839; did 1824.
    _3 fear 1824, 1839; yearn cj. Rossetti.
    _23 Their 1839; thy 1824.
    _30 thee]thou 1824, 1839.
    _32 can I 1839; I can 1824.
    _36 feel'st 1839; feel 1824.

    ***

    TO —.

    [Published in "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. See Editor's Note.]

    Yet look on me—take not thine eyes away,
    Which feed upon the love within mine own,
    Which is indeed but the reflected ray
    Of thine own beauty from my spirit thrown.
    Yet speak to me—thy voice is as the tone _5
    Of my heart's echo, and I think I hear
    That thou yet lovest me; yet thou alone
    Like one before a mirror, without care
    Of aught but thine own features, imaged there;

    And yet I wear out life in watching thee; _10
    A toil so sweet at times, and thou indeed
    Art kind when I am sick, and pity me...

    ***


    MUTABILITY.



    [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]

    We are as clouds that veil the midnight moon;
    How restlessly they speed, and gleam, and quiver,
    Streaking the darkness radiantly!—yet soon
    Night closes round, and they are lost for ever:

    Or like forgotten lyres, whose dissonant strings _5
    Give various response to each varying blast,
    To whose frail frame no second motion brings
    One mood or modulation like the last.

    We rest.—A dream has power to poison sleep;
    We rise.—One wandering thought pollutes the day; _10
    We feel, conceive or reason, laugh or weep;
    Embrace fond woe, or cast our cares away:

    It is the same!—For, be it joy or sorrow,
    The path of its departure still is free:
    Man's yesterday may ne'er be like his morrow; _15
    Nought may endure but Mutability.

    NOTES:
    _15 may 1816; can Lodore, chapter 49, 1835 (Mrs. Shelley).
    _16 Nought may endure but 1816;
    Nor aught endure save Lodore, chapter 49, 1835 (Mrs. Shelley).

    ***


    ON DEATH.



    [For the date of composition see Editor's Note.
    Published with "Alastor", 1816.]

    THERE IS NO WORK, NOR DEVICE, NOR KNOWLEDGE, NOR WISDOM,
    IN THE GRAVE, WHITHER THOU GOEST.—Ecclesiastes.

    The pale, the cold, and the moony smile
    Which the meteor beam of a starless night
    Sheds on a lonely and sea-girt isle,
    Ere the dawning of morn's undoubted light,
    Is the flame of life so fickle and wan
    That flits round our steps till their strength is gone. _5

    O man! hold thee on in courage of soul
    Through the stormy shades of thy worldly way,
    And the billows of cloud that around thee roll
    Shall sleep in the light of a wondrous day, _10
    Where Hell and Heaven shall leave thee free
    To the universe of destiny.

    This world is the nurse of all we know,
    This world is the mother of all we feel,
    And the coming of death is a fearful blow _15
    To a brain unencompassed with nerves of steel;
    When all that we know, or feel, or see,
    Shall pass like an unreal mystery.

    The secret things of the grave are there,
    Where all but this frame must surely be, _20
    Though the fine-wrought eye and the wondrous ear
    No longer will live to hear or to see
    All that is great and all that is strange
    In the boundless realm of unending change.

    Who telleth a tale of unspeaking death? _25
    Who lifteth the veil of what is to come?
    Who painteth the shadows that are beneath
    The wide-winding caves of the peopled tomb?
    Or uniteth the hopes of what shall be
    With the fears and the love for that which we see? _30

    ***


    A SUMMER EVENING CHURCHYARD.



    LECHLADE, GLOUCESTERSHIRE.

    [Composed September, 1815. Published with "Alastor", 1816.]

    The wind has swept from the wide atmosphere
    Each vapour that obscured the sunset's ray;
    And pallid Evening twines its beaming hair
    In duskier braids around the languid eyes of Day:
    Silence and Twilight, unbeloved of men, _5
    Creep hand in hand from yon obscurest glen.

    They breathe their spells towards the departing day,
    Encompassing the earth, air, stars, and sea;
    Light, sound, and motion own the potent sway,
    Responding to the charm with its own mystery. _10
    The winds are still, or the dry church-tower grass
    Knows not their gentle motions as they pass.

    Thou too, aereal Pile! whose pinnacles
    Point from one shrine like pyramids of fire,
    Obeyest in silence their sweet solemn spells, _15
    Clothing in hues of heaven thy dim and distant spire,
    Around whose lessening and invisible height
    Gather among the stars the clouds of night.

    The dead are sleeping in their sepulchres:
    And, mouldering as they sleep, a thrilling sound, _20
    Half sense, half thought, among the darkness stirs,
    Breathed from their wormy beds all living things around,
    And mingling with the still night and mute sky
    Its awful hush is felt inaudibly.

    Thus solemnized and softened, death is mild _25
    And terrorless as this serenest night:
    Here could I hope, like some inquiring child
    Sporting on graves, that death did hide from human sight
    Sweet secrets, or beside its breathless sleep
    That loveliest dreams perpetual watch did keep. _30

    ***


    TO —.



    [Published with "Alastor", 1816. See Editor's Note.]

    DAKRTSI DIOISO POTMON 'APOTMON.

    Oh! there are spirits of the air,
    And genii of the evening breeze,
    And gentle ghosts, with eyes as fair
    As star-beams among twilight trees:—
    Such lovely ministers to meet _5
    Oft hast thou turned from men thy lonely feet.

    With mountain winds, and babbling springs,
    And moonlight seas, that are the voice
    Of these inexplicable things,
    Thou didst hold commune, and rejoice _10
    When they did answer thee; but they
    Cast, like a worthless boon, thy love away.

    And thou hast sought in starry eyes
    Beams that were never meant for thine,
    Another's wealth:—tame sacrifice
    To a fond faith! still dost thou pine? _15
    Still dost thou hope that greeting hands,
    Voice, looks, or lips, may answer thy demands?

    Ah! wherefore didst thou build thine hope
    On the false earth's inconstancy? _20
    Did thine own mind afford no scope
    Of love, or moving thoughts to thee?
    That natural scenes or human smiles
    Could steal the power to wind thee in their wiles?

    Yes, all the faithless smiles are fled _25
    Whose falsehood left thee broken-hearted;
    The glory of the moon is dead;
    Night's ghosts and dreams have now departed;
    Thine own soul still is true to thee,
    But changed to a foul fiend through misery. _30

    This fiend, whose ghastly presence ever
    Beside thee like thy shadow hangs,
    Dream not to chase;—the mad endeavour
    Would scourge thee to severer pangs.
    Be as thou art. Thy settled fate,
    Dark as it is, all change would aggravate. _35

    NOTES:
    _1 of 1816; in 1839.
    _8 moonlight 1816; mountain 1839.

    ***


    TO WORDSWORTH.



    [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]

    Poet of Nature, thou hast wept to know
    That things depart which never may return:
    Childhood and youth, friendship and love's first glow,
    Have fled like sweet dreams, leaving thee to mourn.
    These common woes I feel. One loss is mine _5
    Which thou too feel'st, yet I alone deplore.
    Thou wert as a lone star, whose light did shine
    On some frail bark in winter's midnight roar:
    Thou hast like to a rock-built refuge stood
    Above the blind and battling multitude: _10
    In honoured poverty thy voice did weave
    Songs consecrate to truth and liberty,—
    Deserting these, thou leavest me to grieve,
    Thus having been, that thou shouldst cease to be.

    ***


    FEELINGS OF A REPUBLICAN ON THE FALL OF BONAPARTE.



    [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]

    I hated thee, fallen tyrant! I did groan
    To think that a most unambitious slave,
    Like thou, shouldst dance and revel on the grave
    Of Liberty. Thou mightst have built thy throne
    Where it had stood even now: thou didst prefer _5
    A frail and bloody pomp which Time has swept
    In fragments towards Oblivion. Massacre,
    For this I prayed, would on thy sleep have crept,
    Treason and Slavery, Rapine, Fear, and Lust,
    And stifled thee, their minister. I know _10
    Too late, since thou and France are in the dust,
    That Virtue owns a more eternal foe
    Than Force or Fraud: old Custom, legal Crime,
    And bloody Faith the foulest birth of Time.

    ***


    LINES.



    [Published in Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book", 1823, where it is headed
    "November, 1815". Reprinted in the "Posthumous Poems", 1824. See
    Editor's Note.]

    1.
    The cold earth slept below,
    Above the cold sky shone;
    And all around, with a chilling sound,
    From caves of ice and fields of snow,
    The breath of night like death did flow _5
    Beneath the sinking moon.

    2.
    The wintry hedge was black,
    The green grass was not seen,
    The birds did rest on the bare thorn's breast,
    Whose roots, beside the pathway track, _10
    Had bound their folds o'er many a crack
    Which the frost had made between.

    3.
    Thine eyes glowed in the glare
    Of the moon's dying light;
    As a fen-fire's beam on a sluggish stream _15
    Gleams dimly, so the moon shone there,
    And it yellowed the strings of thy raven hair,
    That shook in the wind of night.

    4.
    The moon made thy lips pale, beloved—
    The wind made thy bosom chill— _20
    The night did shed on thy dear head
    Its frozen dew, and thou didst lie
    Where the bitter breath of the naked sky
    Might visit thee at will.

    NOTE:
    _17 raven 1823; tangled 1824.

    ***


    NOTE ON THE EARLY POEMS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.

    The remainder of Shelley's Poems will be arranged in the order in which they were written. Of course, mistakes will occur in placing some of the shorter ones; for, as I have said, many of these were thrown aside, and I never saw them till I had the misery of looking over his writings after the hand that traced them was dust; and some were in the hands of others, and I never saw them till now. The subjects of the poems are often to me an unerring guide; but on other occasions I can only guess, by finding them in the pages of the same manuscript book that contains poems with the date of whose composition I am fully conversant. In the present arrangement all his poetical translations will be placed together at the end.

    The loss of his early papers prevents my being able to give any of the poetry of his boyhood. Of the few I give as "Early Poems", the greater part were published with "Alastor"; some of them were written previously, some at the same period. The poem beginning 'Oh, there are spirits in the air' was addressed in idea to Coleridge, whom he never knew; and at whose character he could only guess imperfectly, through his writings, and accounts he heard of him from some who knew him well. He regarded his change of opinions as rather an act of will than conviction, and believed that in his inner heart he would be haunted by what Shelley considered the better and holier aspirations of his youth. The summer evening that suggested to him the poem written in the churchyard of Lechlade occurred during his voyage up the Thames in 1815. He had been advised by a physician to live as much as possible in the open air; and a fortnight of a bright warm July was spent in tracing the Thames to its source. He never spent a season more tranquilly than the summer of 1815. He had just recovered from a severe pulmonary attack; the weather was warm and pleasant. He lived near Windsor Forest; and his life was spent under its shades or on the water, meditating subjects for verse. Hitherto, he had chiefly aimed at extending his political doctrines, and attempted so to do by appeals in prose essays to the people, exhorting them to claim their rights; but he had now begun to feel that the time for action was not ripe in England, and that the pen was the only instrument wherewith to prepare the way for better things.

    In the scanty journals kept during those years I find a record of the books that Shelley read during several years. During the years of 1814 and 1815 the list is extensive. It includes, in Greek, Homer, Hesiod, Theocritus, the histories of Thucydides and Herodotus, and Diogenes Laertius. In Latin, Petronius, Suetonius, some of the works of Cicero, a large proportion of those of Seneca and Livy. In English, Milton's poems, Wordsworth's "Excursion", Southey's "Madoc" and "Thalaba", Locke "On the Human Understanding", Bacon's "Novum Organum". In Italian, Ariosto, Tasso, and Alfieri. In French, the "Reveries d'un Solitaire" of Rousseau. To these may be added several modern books of travel. He read few novels.

    ***


    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1816.



    THE SUNSET.



    [Written at Bishopsgate, 1816 (spring). Published in full in the
    "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Lines 9-20, and 28-42, appeared in Hunt's
    "Literary Pocket-Book", 1823, under the titles, respectively, of
    "Sunset. From an Unpublished Poem", And "Grief. A Fragment".]

    There late was One within whose subtle being,
    As light and wind within some delicate cloud
    That fades amid the blue noon's burning sky,
    Genius and death contended. None may know
    The sweetness of the joy which made his breath _5
    Fail, like the trances of the summer air,
    When, with the Lady of his love, who then
    First knew the unreserve of mingled being,
    He walked along the pathway of a field
    Which to the east a hoar wood shadowed o'er, _10
    But to the west was open to the sky.
    There now the sun had sunk, but lines of gold
    Hung on the ashen clouds, and on the points
    Of the far level grass and nodding flowers
    And the old dandelion's hoary beard, _15
    And, mingled with the shades of twilight, lay
    On the brown massy woods—and in the east
    The broad and burning moon lingeringly rose
    Between the black trunks of the crowded trees,
    While the faint stars were gathering overhead.— _20
    'Is it not strange, Isabel,' said the youth,
    'I never saw the sun? We will walk here
    To-morrow; thou shalt look on it with me.'

    That night the youth and lady mingled lay
    In love and sleep—but when the morning came _25
    The lady found her lover dead and cold.
    Let none believe that God in mercy gave
    That stroke. The lady died not, nor grew wild,
    But year by year lived on—in truth I think
    Her gentleness and patience and sad smiles, _30
    And that she did not die, but lived to tend
    Her aged father, were a kind of madness,
    If madness 'tis to be unlike the world.
    For but to see her were to read the tale
    Woven by some subtlest bard, to make hard hearts _35
    Dissolve away in wisdom-working grief;—
    Her eyes were black and lustreless and wan:
    Her eyelashes were worn away with tears,
    Her lips and cheeks were like things dead—so pale;
    Her hands were thin, and through their wandering veins _40
    And weak articulations might be seen
    Day's ruddy light. The tomb of thy dead self
    Which one vexed ghost inhabits, night and day,
    Is all, lost child, that now remains of thee!

    'Inheritor of more than earth can give, _45
    Passionless calm and silence unreproved,
    Whether the dead find, oh, not sleep! but rest,
    And are the uncomplaining things they seem,
    Or live, or drop in the deep sea of Love;
    Oh, that like thine, mine epitaph were—Peace!' _50
    This was the only moan she ever made.

    NOTES:
    _4 death 1839; youth 1824.
    _22 sun? We will walk 1824; sunrise? We will wake cj. Forman.
    _37 Her eyes...wan Hunt, 1823; omitted 1824, 1839.
    _38 worn 1824; torn 1839.

    ***


    HYMN TO INTELLECTUAL BEAUTY.



    [Composed, probably, in Switzerland, in the summer of 1816. Published
    in Hunt's "Examiner", January 19, 1817, and with "Rosalind and Helen",
    1819.]

    1.
    The awful shadow of some unseen Power
    Floats though unseen among us,—visiting
    This various world with as inconstant wing
    As summer winds that creep from flower to flower,—
    Like moonbeams that behind some piny mountain shower, _5
    It visits with inconstant glance
    Each human heart and countenance;
    Like hues and harmonies of evening,—
    Like clouds in starlight widely spread,—
    Like memory of music fled,— _10
    Like aught that for its grace may be
    Dear, and yet dearer for its mystery.

    2.
    Spirit of BEAUTY, that dost consecrate
    With thine own hues all thou dost shine upon
    Of human thought or form,—where art thou gone? _15
    Why dost thou pass away and leave our state,
    This dim vast vale of tears, vacant and desolate?
    Ask why the sunlight not for ever
    Weaves rainbows o'er yon mountain-river,
    Why aught should fail and fade that once is shown, _20
    Why fear and dream and death and birth
    Cast on the daylight of this earth
    Such gloom,—why man has such a scope
    For love and hate, despondency and hope?

    3.
    No voice from some sublimer world hath ever _25
    To sage or poet these responses given—
    Therefore the names of Demon, Ghost, and Heaven.
    Remain the records of their vain endeavour,
    Frail spells—whose uttered charm might not avail to sever,
    From all we hear and all we see, _30
    Doubt, chance, and mutability.
    Thy light alone—like mist o'er mountains driven,
    Or music by the night-wind sent
    Through strings of some still instrument,
    Or moonlight on a midnight stream, _35
    Gives grace and truth to life's unquiet dream.

    4.
    Love, Hope, and Self-esteem, like clouds depart
    And come, for some uncertain moments lent.
    Man were immortal, and omnipotent,
    Didst thou, unknown and awful as thou art, _40
    Keep with thy glorious train firm state within his heart.
    Thou messenger of sympathies,
    That wax and wane in lovers' eyes—
    Thou—that to human thought art nourishment,
    Like darkness to a dying flame! _45
    Depart not as thy shadow came
    Depart not—lest the grave should be,
    Like life and fear, a dark reality.

    5.
    While yet a boy I sought for ghosts, and sped
    Through many a listening chamber, cave and ruin, _50
    And starlight wood, with fearful steps pursuing
    Hopes of high talk with the departed dead.
    I called on poisonous names with which our youth is fed;
    I was not heard—I saw them not—
    When musing deeply on the lot _55
    Of life, at that sweet time when winds are wooing
    All vital things that wake to bring
    News of birds and blossoming,—
    Sudden, thy shadow fell on me;
    I shrieked, and clasped my hands in ecstasy! _60

    6.
    I vowed that I would dedicate my powers
    To thee and thine—have I not kept the vow?
    With beating heart and streaming eyes, even now
    I call the phantoms of a thousand hours
    Each from his voiceless grave: they have in visioned bowers _65
    Of studious zeal or love's delight
    Outwatched with me the envious night—
    They know that never joy illumed my brow
    Unlinked with hope that thou wouldst free
    This world from its dark slavery, _70
    That thou—O awful LOVELINESS,
    Wouldst give whate'er these words cannot express.

    7.
    The day becomes more solemn and serene
    When noon is past—there is a harmony
    In autumn, and a lustre in its sky, _75
    Which through the summer is not heard or seen,
    As if it could not be, as if it had not been!
    Thus let thy power, which like the truth
    Of nature on my passive youth
    Descended, to my onward life supply _80
    Its calm—to one who worships thee,
    And every form containing thee,
    Whom, SPIRIT fair, thy spells did bind
    To fear himself, and love all human kind.

    NOTES:
    _2 among 1819; amongst 1817.
    _14 dost 1819; doth 1817.
    _21 fear and dream 1819; care and pain Boscombe manuscript.
    _37-_48 omitted Boscombe manuscript.
    _44 art 1817; are 1819.
    _76 or 1819; nor 1839.

    ***


    MONT BLANC.



    LINES WRITTEN IN THE VALE OF CHAMOUNI.

    [Composed in Switzerland, July, 1816 (see date below). Printed at the
    end of the "History of a Six Weeks' Tour" published by Shelley in 1817,
    and reprinted with "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Amongst the Boscombe
    manuscripts is a draft of this Ode, mainly in pencil, which has been
    collated by Dr. Garnett.]

    1.
    The everlasting universe of things
    Flows through the mind, and rolls its rapid waves,
    Now dark—now glittering—now reflecting gloom—
    Now lending splendour, where from secret springs
    The source of human thought its tribute brings _5
    Of waters,—with a sound but half its own,
    Such as a feeble brook will oft assume
    In the wild woods, among the mountains lone,
    Where waterfalls around it leap for ever,
    Where woods and winds contend, and a vast river _10
    Over its rocks ceaselessly bursts and raves.

    2.
    Thus thou, Ravine of Arve—dark, deep Ravine—
    Thou many-coloured, many-voiced vale,
    Over whose pines, and crags, and caverns sail
    Fast cloud-shadows and sunbeams: awful scene, _15
    Where Power in likeness of the Arve comes down
    From the ice-gulfs that gird his secret throne,
    Bursting through these dark mountains like the flame
    Of lightning through the tempest;—thou dost lie,
    Thy giant brood of pines around thee clinging, _20
    Children of elder time, in whose devotion
    The chainless winds still come and ever came
    To drink their odours, and their mighty swinging
    To hear—an old and solemn harmony;
    Thine earthly rainbows stretched across the sweep _25
    Of the ethereal waterfall, whose veil
    Robes some unsculptured image; the strange sleep
    Which when the voices of the desert fail
    Wraps all in its own deep eternity;—
    Thy caverns echoing to the Arve's commotion, _30
    A loud, lone sound no other sound can tame;
    Thou art pervaded with that ceaseless motion,
    Thou art the path of that unresting sound—
    Dizzy Ravine! and when I gaze on thee
    I seem as in a trance sublime and strange _35
    To muse on my own separate fantasy,
    My own, my human mind, which passively
    Now renders and receives fast influencings,
    Holding an unremitting interchange
    With the clear universe of things around; _40
    One legion of wild thoughts, whose wandering wings
    Now float above thy darkness, and now rest
    Where that or thou art no unbidden guest,
    In the still cave of the witch Poesy,
    Seeking among the shadows that pass by _45
    Ghosts of all things that are, some shade of thee,
    Some phantom, some faint image; till the breast
    From which they fled recalls them, thou art there!

    3.
    Some say that gleams of a remoter world
    Visit the soul in sleep,—that death is slumber, _50
    And that its shapes the busy thoughts outnumber
    Of those who wake and live.—I look on high;
    Has some unknown omnipotence unfurled
    The veil of life and death? or do I lie
    In dream, and does the mightier world of sleep _55
    Spread far around and inaccessibly
    Its circles? For the very spirit fails,
    Driven like a homeless cloud from steep to steep
    That vanishes among the viewless gales!
    Far, far above, piercing the infinite sky, _60
    Mont Blanc appears,—still, snowy, and serene—
    Its subject mountains their unearthly forms
    Pile around it, ice and rock; broad vales between
    Of frozen floods, unfathomable deeps,
    Blue as the overhanging heaven, that spread _65
    And wind among the accumulated steeps;
    A desert peopled by the storms alone,
    Save when the eagle brings some hunter's bone,
    And the wolf tracts her there—how hideously
    Its shapes are heaped around! rude, bare, and high, _70
    Ghastly, and scarred, and riven.—Is this the scene
    Where the old Earthquake-daemon taught her young
    Ruin? Were these their toys? or did a sea
    Of fire envelope once this silent snow?
    None can reply—all seems eternal now. _75
    The wilderness has a mysterious tongue
    Which teaches awful doubt, or faith so mild,
    So solemn, so serene, that man may be,
    But for such faith, with nature reconciled;
    Thou hast a voice, great Mountain, to repeal _80
    Large codes of fraud and woe; not understood
    By all, but which the wise, and great, and good
    Interpret, or make felt, or deeply feel.

    4.
    The fields, the lakes, the forests, and the streams,
    Ocean, and all the living things that dwell _85
    Within the daedal earth; lightning, and rain,
    Earthquake, and fiery flood, and hurricane,
    The torpor of the year when feeble dreams
    Visit the hidden buds, or dreamless sleep
    Holds every future leaf and flower;—the bound _90
    With which from that detested trance they leap;
    The works and ways of man, their death and birth,
    And that of him and all that his may be;
    All things that move and breathe with toil and sound
    Are born and die; revolve, subside, and swell. _95
    Power dwells apart in its tranquillity,
    Remote, serene, and inaccessible:
    And THIS, the naked countenance of earth,
    On which I gaze, even these primaeval mountains
    Teach the adverting mind. The glaciers creep _100
    Like snakes that watch their prey, from their far fountains,
    Slow rolling on; there, many a precipice,
    Frost and the Sun in scorn of mortal power
    Have piled: dome, pyramid, and pinnacle,
    A city of death, distinct with many a tower _105
    And wall impregnable of beaming ice.
    Yet not a city, but a flood of ruin
    Is there, that from the boundaries of the sky
    Rolls its perpetual stream; vast pines are strewing
    Its destined path, or in the mangled soil _110
    Branchless and shattered stand; the rocks, drawn down
    From yon remotest waste, have overthrown
    The limits of the dead and living world,
    Never to be reclaimed. The dwelling-place
    Of insects, beasts, and birds, becomes its spoil; _115
    Their food and their retreat for ever gone,
    So much of life and joy is lost. The race
    Of man flies far in dread; his work and dwelling
    Vanish, like smoke before the tempest's stream,
    And their place is not known. Below, vast caves _120
    Shine in the rushing torrents' restless gleam,
    Which from those secret chasms in tumult welling
    Meet in the vale, and one majestic River,
    The breath and blood of distant lands, for ever
    Rolls its loud waters to the ocean waves, _125
    Breathes its swift vapours to the circling air.

    5.
    Mont Blanc yet gleams on high—the power is there,
    The still and solemn power of many sights,
    And many sounds, and much of life and death.
    In the calm darkness of the moonless nights, _130
    In the lone glare of day, the snows descend
    Upon that Mountain; none beholds them there,
    Nor when the flakes burn in the sinking sun,
    Or the star-beams dart through them:—Winds contend
    Silently there, and heap the snow with breath _135
    Rapid and strong, but silently! Its home
    The voiceless lightning in these solitudes
    Keeps innocently, and like vapour broods
    Over the snow. The secret strength of things
    Which governs thought, and to the infinite dome _140
    Of heaven is as a law, inhabits thee!
    And what were thou, and earth, and stars, and sea,
    If to the human mind's imaginings
    Silence and solitude were vacancy?

    July 23, 1816.

    NOTES:
    _15 cloud-shadows]cloud shadows 1817;
    cloud, shadows 1824; clouds, shadows 1839.
    _20 Thy 1824; The 1839.
    _53 unfurled]upfurled cj. James Thomson ('B.V.').
    _56 Spread 1824; Speed 1839.
    _69 tracks her there 1824; watches her Boscombe manuscript.
    _79 But for such 1824; In such a Boscombe manuscript.
    _108 boundaries of the sky]boundary of the skies cj. Rossetti
    (cf. lines 102, 106).
    _121 torrents']torrent's 1817, 1824, 1839.

    ***


    CANCELLED PASSAGE OF MONT BLANC.



    [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    There is a voice, not understood by all,
    Sent from these desert-caves. It is the roar
    Of the rent ice-cliff which the sunbeams call,
    Plunging into the vale—it is the blast
    Descending on the pines—the torrents pour... _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: HOME.



    [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Dear home, thou scene of earliest hopes and joys,
    The least of which wronged Memory ever makes
    Bitterer than all thine unremembered tears.

    ***


    FRAGMENT OF A GHOST STORY.



    [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    A shovel of his ashes took
    From the hearth's obscurest nook,
    Muttering mysteries as she went.
    Helen and Henry knew that Granny
    Was as much afraid of Ghosts as any, _5
    And so they followed hard—
    But Helen clung to her brother's arm,
    And her own spasm made her shake.

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1816, BY MRS. SHELLEY.


    Shelley wrote little during this year. The poem entitled "The Sunset" was written in the spring of the year, while still residing at Bishopsgate. He spent the summer on the shores of the Lake of Geneva. The "Hymn to Intellectual Beauty" was conceived during his voyage round the lake with Lord Byron. He occupied himself during this voyage by reading the "Nouvelle Heloise" for the first time. The reading it on the very spot where the scenes are laid added to the interest; and he was at once surprised and charmed by the passionate eloquence and earnest enthralling interest that pervade this work. There was something in the character of Saint-Preux, in his abnegation of self, and in the worship he paid to Love, that coincided with Shelley's own disposition; and, though differing in many of the views and shocked by others, yet the effect of the whole was fascinating and delightful.

    "Mont Blanc" was inspired by a view of that mountain and its surrounding peaks and valleys, as he lingered on the Bridge of Arve on his way through the Valley of Chamouni. Shelley makes the following mention of this poem in his publication of the "History of a Six Weeks' Tour, and Letters from Switzerland": 'The poem entitled "Mont Blanc" is written by the author of the two letters from Chamouni and Vevai. It was composed under the immediate impression of the deep and powerful feelings excited by the objects which it attempts to describe; and, as an undisciplined overflowing of the soul, rests its claim to approbation on an attempt to imitate the untamable wildness and inaccessible solemnity from which those feelings sprang.'

    This was an eventful year, and less time was given to study than usual. In the list of his reading I find, in Greek, Theocritus, the "Prometheus" of Aeschylus, several of Plutarch's "Lives", and the works of Lucian. In Latin, Lucretius, Pliny's "Letters", the "Annals" and "Germany" of Tacitus. In French, the "History of the French Revolution" by Lacretelle. He read for the first time, this year, Montaigne's "Essays", and regarded them ever after as one of the most delightful and instructive books in the world. The list is scanty in English works: Locke's "Essay", "Political Justice", and Coleridge's "Lay Sermon", form nearly the whole. It was his frequent habit to read aloud to me in the evening; in this way we read, this year, the New Testament, "Paradise Lost", Spenser's "Faery Queen", and "Don Quixote".

    ***


    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1817.



    MARIANNE'S DREAM.



    [Composed at Marlow, 1817. Published in Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book",
    1819, and reprinted in "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    A pale Dream came to a Lady fair,
    And said, A boon, a boon, I pray!
    I know the secrets of the air,
    And things are lost in the glare of day,
    Which I can make the sleeping see, _5
    If they will put their trust in me.

    2.
    And thou shalt know of things unknown,
    If thou wilt let me rest between
    The veiny lids, whose fringe is thrown
    Over thine eyes so dark and sheen: _10
    And half in hope, and half in fright,
    The Lady closed her eyes so bright.

    3.
    At first all deadly shapes were driven
    Tumultuously across her sleep,
    And o'er the vast cope of bending heaven _15
    All ghastly-visaged clouds did sweep;
    And the Lady ever looked to spy
    If the golden sun shone forth on high.

    4.
    And as towards the east she turned,
    She saw aloft in the morning air, _20
    Which now with hues of sunrise burned,
    A great black Anchor rising there;
    And wherever the Lady turned her eyes,
    It hung before her in the skies.

    5.
    The sky was blue as the summer sea, _25
    The depths were cloudless overhead,
    The air was calm as it could be,
    There was no sight or sound of dread,
    But that black Anchor floating still
    Over the piny eastern hill. _30

    6.
    The Lady grew sick with a weight of fear
    To see that Anchor ever hanging,
    And veiled her eyes; she then did hear
    The sound as of a dim low clanging,
    And looked abroad if she might know _35
    Was it aught else, or but the flow
    Of the blood in her own veins, to and fro.

    7.
    There was a mist in the sunless air,
    Which shook as it were with an earthquake's shock,
    But the very weeds that blossomed there _40
    Were moveless, and each mighty rock
    Stood on its basis steadfastly;
    The Anchor was seen no more on high.

    8.
    But piled around, with summits hid
    In lines of cloud at intervals, _45
    Stood many a mountain pyramid
    Among whose everlasting walls
    Two mighty cities shone, and ever
    Through the red mist their domes did quiver.

    9.
    On two dread mountains, from whose crest, _50
    Might seem, the eagle, for her brood,
    Would ne'er have hung her dizzy nest,
    Those tower-encircled cities stood.
    A vision strange such towers to see,
    Sculptured and wrought so gorgeously, _55
    Where human art could never be.

    10.
    And columns framed of marble white,
    And giant fanes, dome over dome
    Piled, and triumphant gates, all bright
    With workmanship, which could not come _60
    From touch of mortal instrument,
    Shot o'er the vales, or lustre lent
    From its own shapes magnificent.

    11.
    But still the Lady heard that clang
    Filling the wide air far away; _65
    And still the mist whose light did hang
    Among the mountains shook alway,
    So that the Lady's heart beat fast,
    As half in joy, and half aghast,
    On those high domes her look she cast. _70

    12.
    Sudden, from out that city sprung
    A light that made the earth grow red;
    Two flames that each with quivering tongue
    Licked its high domes, and overhead
    Among those mighty towers and fanes _75
    Dropped fire, as a volcano rains
    Its sulphurous ruin on the plains.

    13.
    And hark! a rush as if the deep
    Had burst its bonds; she looked behind
    And saw over the western steep _80
    A raging flood descend, and wind
    Through that wide vale; she felt no fear,
    But said within herself, 'Tis clear
    These towers are Nature's own, and she
    To save them has sent forth the sea. _85

    14.
    And now those raging billows came
    Where that fair Lady sate, and she
    Was borne towards the showering flame
    By the wild waves heaped tumultuously.
    And, on a little plank, the flow _90
    Of the whirlpool bore her to and fro.

    15.
    The flames were fiercely vomited
    From every tower and every dome,
    And dreary light did widely shed
    O'er that vast flood's suspended foam, _95
    Beneath the smoke which hung its night
    On the stained cope of heaven's light.

    16.
    The plank whereon that Lady sate
    Was driven through the chasms, about and about,
    Between the peaks so desolate _100
    Of the drowning mountains, in and out,
    As the thistle-beard on a whirlwind sails—
    While the flood was filling those hollow vales.

    17.
    At last her plank an eddy crossed,
    And bore her to the city's wall, _105
    Which now the flood had reached almost;
    It might the stoutest heart appal
    To hear the fire roar and hiss
    Through the domes of those mighty palaces.

    18.
    The eddy whirled her round and round _110
    Before a gorgeous gate, which stood
    Piercing the clouds of smoke which bound
    Its aery arch with light like blood;
    She looked on that gate of marble clear,
    With wonder that extinguished fear. _115

    19.
    For it was filled with sculptures rarest,
    Of forms most beautiful and strange,
    Like nothing human, but the fairest
    Of winged shapes, whose legions range
    Throughout the sleep of those that are, _120
    Like this same Lady, good and fair.

    20.
    And as she looked, still lovelier grew
    Those marble forms;—the sculptor sure
    Was a strong spirit, and the hue
    Of his own mind did there endure _125
    After the touch, whose power had braided
    Such grace, was in some sad change faded.

    21.
    She looked, the flames were dim, the flood
    Grew tranquil as a woodland river
    Winding through hills in solitude; _130
    Those marble shapes then seemed to quiver,
    And their fair limbs to float in motion,
    Like weeds unfolding in the ocean.

    22.
    And their lips moved; one seemed to speak,
    When suddenly the mountains cracked, _135
    And through the chasm the flood did break
    With an earth-uplifting cataract:
    The statues gave a joyous scream,
    And on its wings the pale thin Dream
    Lifted the Lady from the stream. _140

    23.
    The dizzy flight of that phantom pale
    Waked the fair Lady from her sleep,
    And she arose, while from the veil
    Of her dark eyes the Dream did creep,
    And she walked about as one who knew _145
    That sleep has sights as clear and true
    As any waking eyes can view.

    NOTES:
    _18 golden 1819; gold 1824, 1839.
    _28 or 1824; nor 1839.
    _62 or]a cj. Rossetti.
    _63 its]their cj. Rossetti.
    _92 flames cj. Rossetti; waves 1819, 1824, 1839.
    _101 mountains 1819; mountain 1824, 1839.
    _106 flood]flames cj. James Thomson ('B.V.').
    _120 that 1819, 1824; who 1839.
    _135 mountains 1819; mountain 1824, 1839.

    ***


    TO CONSTANTIA, SINGING.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Amongst the
    Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian is a chaotic first draft, from
    which Mr. Locock ["Examination", etc., 1903, pages 60-62] has, with
    patient ingenuity, disengaged a first and a second stanza consistent
    with the metrical scheme of stanzas 3 and 4. The two stanzas thus
    recovered are printed here immediately below the poem as edited by Mrs.
    Shelley. It need hardly be added that Mr. Locock's restored version
    cannot, any more than Mrs. Shelley's obviously imperfect one, be
    regarded in the light of a final recension.]

    1.
    Thus to be lost and thus to sink and die,
    Perchance were death indeed!—Constantia, turn!
    In thy dark eyes a power like light doth lie,
    Even though the sounds which were thy voice, which burn
    Between thy lips, are laid to sleep; _5
    Within thy breath, and on thy hair, like odour, it is yet,
    And from thy touch like fire doth leap.
    Even while I write, my burning cheeks are wet.
    Alas, that the torn heart can bleed, but not forget!

    2.
    A breathless awe, like the swift change _10
    Unseen, but felt in youthful slumbers,
    Wild, sweet, but uncommunicably strange,
    Thou breathest now in fast ascending numbers.
    The cope of heaven seems rent and cloven
    By the enchantment of thy strain, _15
    And on my shoulders wings are woven,
    To follow its sublime career
    Beyond the mighty moons that wane
    Upon the verge of Nature's utmost sphere,
    Till the world's shadowy walls are past and disappear. _20

    3.
    Her voice is hovering o'er my soul—it lingers
    O'ershadowing it with soft and lulling wings,
    The blood and life within those snowy fingers
    Teach witchcraft to the instrumental strings.
    My brain is wild, my breath comes quick— _25
    The blood is listening in my frame,
    And thronging shadows, fast and thick,
    Fall on my overflowing eyes;
    My heart is quivering like a flame;
    As morning dew, that in the sunbeam dies, _30
    I am dissolved in these consuming ecstasies.

    4.
    I have no life, Constantia, now, but thee,
    Whilst, like the world-surrounding air, thy song
    Flows on, and fills all things with melody.—
    Now is thy voice a tempest swift and strong, _35
    On which, like one in trance upborne,
    Secure o'er rocks and waves I sweep,
    Rejoicing like a cloud of morn.
    Now 'tis the breath of summer night,
    Which when the starry waters sleep,
    Round western isles, with incense-blossoms bright, _40
    Lingering, suspends my soul in its voluptuous flight.


    STANZAS 1 AND 2.



    As restored by Mr. C.D. Locock.

    1.
    Cease, cease—for such wild lessons madmen learn
    Thus to be lost, and thus to sink and die
    Perchance were death indeed!—Constantia turn
    In thy dark eyes a power like light doth lie
    Even though the sounds its voice that were _5
    Between [thy] lips are laid to sleep:
    Within thy breath, and on thy hair
    Like odour, it is [lingering] yet
    And from thy touch like fire doth leap—
    Even while I write, my burning cheeks are wet— _10
    Alas, that the torn heart can bleed but not forget.

    2.
    [A deep and] breathless awe like the swift change
    Of dreams unseen but felt in youthful slumbers
    Wild sweet yet incommunicably strange
    Thou breathest now in fast ascending numbers... _15

    ***


    TO CONSTANTIA.


    [Dated 1817 by Mrs. Shelley, and printed by her in the "Poetical
    Works", 1839, 1st edition. A copy exists amongst the Shelley
    manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc.,
    1903, page 46.]

    1.
    The rose that drinks the fountain dew
    In the pleasant air of noon,
    Grows pale and blue with altered hue—
    In the gaze of the nightly moon;
    For the planet of frost, so cold and bright, _5
    Makes it wan with her borrowed light.

    2.
    Such is my heart—roses are fair,
    And that at best a withered blossom;
    But thy false care did idly wear
    Its withered leaves in a faithless bosom; _10
    And fed with love, like air and dew,
    Its growth—

    NOTES:
    _1 The rose]The red Rose B.
    _2 pleasant]fragrant B.
    _6 her omitted B.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: TO ONE SINGING.



    [Dated 1817 by Mrs. Shelley, and published in the "Poetical Works",
    1839, 1st edition. The manuscript original, by which Mr. Locock has
    revised and (by one line) enlarged the text, is amongst the Shelley
    manuscripts at the Bodleian. The metre, as Mr. Locock ("Examination",
    etc., 1903, page 63) points out, is terza rima.]

    My spirit like a charmed bark doth swim
    Upon the liquid waves of thy sweet singing,
    Far far away into the regions dim

    Of rapture—as a boat, with swift sails winging
    Its way adown some many-winding river, _5
    Speeds through dark forests o'er the waters swinging...

    NOTES:
    _3 Far far away B.; Far away 1839.
    _6 Speeds...swinging B.; omitted 1839.

    ***


    A FRAGMENT: TO MUSIC.



    [Published in "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.
    Dated 1817 (Mrs. Shelley).]

    Silver key of the fountain of tears,
    Where the spirit drinks till the brain is wild;
    Softest grave of a thousand fears,
    Where their mother, Care, like a drowsy child,
    Is laid asleep in flowers. _5

    ***


    ANOTHER FRAGMENT: TO MUSIC.



    [Published in "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.
    Dated 1817 (Mrs. Shelley).]

    No, Music, thou art not the 'food of Love.'
    Unless Love feeds upon its own sweet self,
    Till it becomes all Music murmurs of.

    ***


    'MIGHTY EAGLE'.



    SUPPOSED TO BE ADDRESSED TO WILLIAM GODWIN.

    [Published in 1882 ("Poetical Works of P. B. S.") by Mr. H. Buxton
    Forman, C.B., by whom it is dated 1817.]

    Mighty eagle! thou that soarest
    O'er the misty mountain forest,
    And amid the light of morning
    Like a cloud of glory hiest,
    And when night descends defiest _5
    The embattled tempests' warning!

    ***


    TO THE LORD CHANCELLOR.



    [Published in part (5-9, 14) by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839,
    1st edition (without title); in full 2nd edition (with title). Four
    transcripts in Mrs. Shelley's hand are extant: two—Leigh Hunt's and
    Ch. Cowden Clarke's—described by Forman, and two belonging to Mr. C.W.
    Frederickson of Brooklyn, described by Woodberry ["Poetical Works",
    Centenary Edition, 3 193-6]. One of the latter (here referred to as Fa)
    is corrected in Shelley's autograph. A much-corrected draft in
    Shelley's hand is in the Harvard manuscript book.]

    1.
    Thy country's curse is on thee, darkest crest
    Of that foul, knotted, many-headed worm
    Which rends our Mother's bosom—Priestly Pest!
    Masked Resurrection of a buried Form!

    2.
    Thy country's curse is on thee! Justice sold, _5
    Truth trampled, Nature's landmarks overthrown,
    And heaps of fraud-accumulated gold,
    Plead, loud as thunder, at Destruction's throne.

    3.
    And whilst that sure slow Angel which aye stands
    Watching the beck of Mutability _10
    Delays to execute her high commands,
    And, though a nation weeps, spares thine and thee,

    4.
    Oh, let a father's curse be on thy soul,
    And let a daughter's hope be on thy tomb;
    Be both, on thy gray head, a leaden cowl _15
    To weigh thee down to thine approaching doom.

    5.
    I curse thee by a parent's outraged love,
    By hopes long cherished and too lately lost,
    By gentle feelings thou couldst never prove,
    By griefs which thy stern nature never crossed; _20

    6.
    By those infantine smiles of happy light,
    Which were a fire within a stranger's hearth,
    Quenched even when kindled, in untimely night
    Hiding the promise of a lovely birth:

    7.
    By those unpractised accents of young speech, _25
    Which he who is a father thought to frame
    To gentlest lore, such as the wisest teach—
    THOU strike the lyre of mind!—oh, grief and shame!

    8.
    By all the happy see in children's growth—
    That undeveloped flower of budding years— _30
    Sweetness and sadness interwoven both,
    Source of the sweetest hopes and saddest fears-

    9.
    By all the days, under an hireling's care,
    Of dull constraint and bitter heaviness,—
    O wretched ye if ever any were,— _35
    Sadder than orphans, yet not fatherless!

    10.
    By the false cant which on their innocent lips
    Must hang like poison on an opening bloom,
    By the dark creeds which cover with eclipse
    Their pathway from the cradle to the tomb— _40

    11.
    By thy most impious Hell, and all its terror;
    By all the grief, the madness, and the guilt
    Of thine impostures, which must be their error—
    That sand on which thy crumbling power is built—

    12.
    By thy complicity with lust and hate— _45
    Thy thirst for tears—thy hunger after gold—
    The ready frauds which ever on thee wait—
    The servile arts in which thou hast grown old—

    13.
    By thy most killing sneer, and by thy smile—
    By all the arts and snares of thy black den, _50
    And—for thou canst outweep the crocodile—
    By thy false tears—those millstones braining men—

    14.
    By all the hate which checks a father's love—
    By all the scorn which kills a father's care—
    By those most impious hands which dared remove _55
    Nature's high bounds—by thee—and by despair—

    15.
    Yes, the despair which bids a father groan,
    And cry, 'My children are no longer mine—
    The blood within those veins may be mine own,
    But—Tyrant—their polluted souls are thine;— _60

    16.
    I curse thee—though I hate thee not.—O slave!
    If thou couldst quench the earth-consuming Hell
    Of which thou art a daemon, on thy grave
    This curse should be a blessing. Fare thee well!

    NOTES:
    _9 Angel which aye cancelled by Shelley for Fate which ever Fa.
    _24 promise of a 1839, 2nd edition; promises of 1839, 1st edition.
    _27 lore]love Fa.
    _32 and saddest]the saddest Fa.
    _36 yet not fatherless! cancelled by Shelley for why not fatherless? Fa.
    _41-_44 By...built 'crossed by Shelley and marked dele by Mrs. Shelley'
    (Woodberry) Fa.
    _50 arts and snares 1839, 1st edition;
    snares and arts Harvard Coll. manuscript;
    snares and nets Fa.;
    acts and snares 1839, 2nd edition.
    _59 those]their Fa.

    ***


    TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley (1, 5, 6), "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st
    edition; in full, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. A transcript is
    extant in Mrs. Shelley's hand.]

    1.
    The billows on the beach are leaping around it,
    The bark is weak and frail,
    The sea looks black, and the clouds that bound it
    Darkly strew the gale.
    Come with me, thou delightful child,
    Come with me, though the wave is wild, _5
    And the winds are loose, we must not stay,
    Or the slaves of the law may rend thee away.

    2.
    They have taken thy brother and sister dear,
    They have made them unfit for thee; _10
    They have withered the smile and dried the tear
    Which should have been sacred to me.
    To a blighting faith and a cause of crime
    They have bound them slaves in youthly prime,
    And they will curse my name and thee _15
    Because we fearless are and free.

    3.
    Come thou, beloved as thou art;
    Another sleepeth still
    Near thy sweet mother's anxious heart,
    Which thou with joy shalt fill, _20
    With fairest smiles of wonder thrown
    On that which is indeed our own,
    And which in distant lands will be
    The dearest playmate unto thee.

    4.
    Fear not the tyrants will rule for ever, _25
    Or the priests of the evil faith;
    They stand on the brink of that raging river,
    Whose waves they have tainted with death.
    It is fed from the depth of a thousand dells,
    Around them it foams and rages and swells; _30
    And their swords and their sceptres I floating see,
    Like wrecks on the surge of eternity.

    5.
    Rest, rest, and shriek not, thou gentle child!
    The rocking of the boat thou fearest,
    And the cold spray and the clamour wild?— _35
    There, sit between us two, thou dearest—
    Me and thy mother—well we know
    The storm at which thou tremblest so,
    With all its dark and hungry graves,
    Less cruel than the savage slaves _40
    Who hunt us o'er these sheltering waves.

    6.
    This hour will in thy memory
    Be a dream of days forgotten long.
    We soon shall dwell by the azure sea
    Of serene and golden Italy,
    Or Greece, the Mother of the free; _45
    And I will teach thine infant tongue
    To call upon those heroes old
    In their own language, and will mould
    Thy growing spirit in the flame
    Of Grecian lore, that by such name _50
    A patriot's birthright thou mayst claim!

    NOTES:
    _1 on the beach omitted 1839, 1st edition.
    _8 of the law 1839, 1st edition; of law 1839, 2nd edition.
    _14 prime transcript; time editions 1839.
    _16 fearless are editions 1839; are fearless transcript.
    _20 shalt transcript; wilt editions 1839.
    _25-_32 Fear...eternity omitted, transcript.
    See "Rosalind and Helen", lines 894-901.
    _33 and transcript; omitted editions 1839.
    _41 us transcript, 1839, 1st edition; thee 1839, 2nd edition.
    _42 will in transcript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    will sometime in 1839, 1st edition.
    _43 long transcript; omitted editions 1839.
    _48 those transcript, 1839, 1st edition; their 1839, 2nd edition.

    ***


    FROM THE ORIGINAL DRAFT OF THE POEM TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.



    [Published in Dr. Garnett's "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    1.
    The world is now our dwelling-place;
    Where'er the earth one fading trace
    Of what was great and free does keep,
    That is our home!...
    Mild thoughts of man's ungentle race _5
    Shall our contented exile reap;
    For who that in some happy place
    His own free thoughts can freely chase
    By woods and waves can clothe his face
    In cynic smiles? Child! we shall weep. _10

    2.
    This lament,
    The memory of thy grievous wrong
    Will fade...
    But genius is omnipotent
    To hallow... _15

    ***


    ON FANNY GODWIN.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, among the poems of 1817, in "Poetical
    Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    Her voice did quiver as we parted,
    Yet knew I not that heart was broken
    From which it came, and I departed
    Heeding not the words then spoken.
    Misery—O Misery, _5
    This world is all too wide for thee.

    ***


    LINES.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley with the date 'November 5th, 1817,' in
    "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    That time is dead for ever, child!
    Drowned, frozen, dead for ever!
    We look on the past
    And stare aghast
    At the spectres wailing, pale and ghast, _5
    Of hopes which thou and I beguiled
    To death on life's dark river.

    2.
    The stream we gazed on then rolled by;
    Its waves are unreturning;
    But we yet stand _10
    In a lone land,
    Like tombs to mark the memory
    Of hopes and fears, which fade and flee
    In the light of life's dim morning.

    ***


    DEATH.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    They die—the dead return not—Misery
    Sits near an open grave and calls them over,
    A Youth with hoary hair and haggard eye—
    They are the names of kindred, friend and lover,
    Which he so feebly calls—they all are gone— _5
    Fond wretch, all dead! those vacant names alone,
    This most familiar scene, my pain—
    These tombs—alone remain.

    2.
    Misery, my sweetest friend—oh, weep no more!
    Thou wilt not be consoled—I wonder not! _10
    For I have seen thee from thy dwelling's door
    Watch the calm sunset with them, and this spot
    Was even as bright and calm, but transitory,
    And now thy hopes are gone, thy hair is hoary;
    This most familiar scene, my pain— _15
    These tombs—alone remain.

    NOTE:
    _5 calls editions 1839; called 1824.

    ***


    OTHO.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    1.
    Thou wert not, Cassius, and thou couldst not be,
    Last of the Romans, though thy memory claim
    From Brutus his own glory—and on thee
    Rests the full splendour of his sacred fame:
    Nor he who dared make the foul tyrant quail _5
    Amid his cowering senate with thy name,
    Though thou and he were great—it will avail
    To thine own fame that Otho's should not fail.

    2.
    'Twill wrong thee not—thou wouldst, if thou couldst feel,
    Abjure such envious fame—great Otho died _10
    Like thee—he sanctified his country's steel,
    At once the tyrant and tyrannicide,
    In his own blood—a deed it was to bring
    Tears from all men—though full of gentle pride,
    Such pride as from impetuous love may spring, _15
    That will not be refused its offering.

    NOTE:
    _13 bring cj. Garnett; buy 1839, 1st edition; wring cj. Rossetti.

    ***


    FRAGMENTS SUPPOSED TO BE PARTS OF OTHO.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862,—where, however,
    only the fragment numbered 2 is assigned to "Otho". Forman (1876)
    connects all three fragments with that projected poem.]

    1.
    Those whom nor power, nor lying faith, nor toil,
    Nor custom, queen of many slaves, makes blind,
    Have ever grieved that man should be the spoil
    Of his own weakness, and with earnest mind
    Fed hopes of its redemption; these recur _5
    Chastened by deathful victory now, and find
    Foundations in this foulest age, and stir
    Me whom they cheer to be their minister.

    2.
    Dark is the realm of grief: but human things
    Those may not know who cannot weep for them. _10

    ...

    3.
    Once more descend
    The shadows of my soul upon mankind,
    For to those hearts with which they never blend,
    Thoughts are but shadows which the flashing mind
    From the swift clouds which track its flight of fire, _15
    Casts on the gloomy world it leaves behind.

    ...

    ***


    'O THAT A CHARIOT OF CLOUD WERE MINE'.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    O that a chariot of cloud were mine!
    Of cloud which the wild tempest weaves in air,
    When the moon over the ocean's line
    Is spreading the locks of her bright gray hair.
    O that a chariot of cloud were mine! _5
    I would sail on the waves of the billowy wind
    To the mountain peak and the rocky lake,
    And the...

    ***


    FRAGMENT: TO A FRIEND RELEASED FROM PRISON.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    For me, my friend, if not that tears did tremble
    In my faint eyes, and that my heart beat fast
    With feelings which make rapture pain resemble,
    Yet, from thy voice that falsehood starts aghast,
    I thank thee—let the tyrant keep _5
    His chains and tears, yea, let him weep
    With rage to see thee freshly risen,
    Like strength from slumber, from the prison,
    In which he vainly hoped the soul to bind
    Which on the chains must prey that fetter humankind. _10

    NOTE:
    For the metre see Fragment: "A Gentle Story" (A.C. Bradley.)

    ***


    FRAGMENT: SATAN BROKEN LOOSE.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    A golden-winged Angel stood
    Before the Eternal Judgement-seat:
    His looks were wild, and Devils' blood
    Stained his dainty hands and feet.
    The Father and the Son _5
    Knew that strife was now begun.
    They knew that Satan had broken his chain,
    And with millions of daemons in his train,
    Was ranging over the world again.
    Before the Angel had told his tale, _10
    A sweet and a creeping sound
    Like the rushing of wings was heard around;
    And suddenly the lamps grew pale—
    The lamps, before the Archangels seven,
    That burn continually in Heaven. _15

    ***


    FRAGMENT: "IGNICULUS DESIDERII".



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. This
    fragment is amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr.
    C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 63.]

    To thirst and find no fill—to wail and wander
    With short unsteady steps—to pause and ponder—
    To feel the blood run through the veins and tingle
    Where busy thought and blind sensation mingle;
    To nurse the image of unfelt caresses _5
    Till dim imagination just possesses
    The half-created shadow, then all the night
    Sick...

    NOTES:
    _2 unsteady B.; uneasy 1839, 1st edition.
    _7, _8 then...Sick B.; wanting, 1839, 1st edition.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: "AMOR AETERNUS".



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    Wealth and dominion fade into the mass
    Of the great sea of human right and wrong,
    When once from our possession they must pass;
    But love, though misdirected, is among
    The things which are immortal, and surpass _5
    All that frail stuff which will be—or which was.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THOUGHTS COME AND GO IN SOLITUDE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    My thoughts arise and fade in solitude,
    The verse that would invest them melts away
    Like moonlight in the heaven of spreading day:
    How beautiful they were, how firm they stood,
    Flecking the starry sky like woven pearl! _5

    ***


    A HATE-SONG.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    A hater he came and sat by a ditch,
    And he took an old cracked lute;
    And he sang a song which was more of a screech
    'Gainst a woman that was a brute.

    ***


    LINES TO A CRITIC.



    [Published by Hunt in "The Liberal", No. 3, 1823. Reprinted in
    "Posthumous Poems", 1824, where it is dated December, 1817.]

    1.
    Honey from silkworms who can gather,
    Or silk from the yellow bee?
    The grass may grow in winter weather
    As soon as hate in me.

    2.
    Hate men who cant, and men who pray, _5
    And men who rail like thee;
    An equal passion to repay
    They are not coy like me.

    3.
    Or seek some slave of power and gold
    To be thy dear heart's mate; _10
    Thy love will move that bigot cold
    Sooner than me, thy hate.

    4.
    A passion like the one I prove
    Cannot divided be;
    I hate thy want of truth and love— _15
    How should I then hate thee?

    ***


    OZYMANDIAS.



    [Published by Hunt in "The Examiner", January, 1818. Reprinted with
    "Rosalind and Helen", 1819. There is a copy amongst the Shelley
    manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's
    "Examination", etc., 1903, page 46.]

    I met a traveller from an antique land
    Who said: Two vast and trunkless legs of stone
    Stand in the desert...Near them, on the sand,
    Half sunk, a shattered visage lies, whose frown,
    And wrinkled lip, and sneer of cold command, _5
    Tell that its sculptor well those passions read
    Which yet survive, stamped on these lifeless things,
    The hand that mocked them, and the heart that fed:
    And on the pedestal these words appear:
    'My name is Ozymandias, king of kings: _10
    Look on my works, ye Mighty, and despair!'
    Nothing beside remains. Round the decay
    Of that colossal wreck, boundless and bare
    The lone and level sands stretch far away.

    NOTE:
    _9 these words appear]this legend clear B.

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1817, BY MRS. SHELLEY.

    The very illness that oppressed, and the aspect of death which had approached so near Shelley, appear to have kindled to yet keener life the Spirit of Poetry in his heart. The restless thoughts kept awake by pain clothed themselves in verse. Much was composed during this year. The "Revolt of Islam", written and printed, was a great effort—"Rosalind and Helen" was begun—and the fragments and poems I can trace to the same period show how full of passion and reflection were his solitary hours.

    In addition to such poems as have an intelligible aim and shape, many a stray idea and transitory emotion found imperfect and abrupt expression, and then again lost themselves in silence. As he never wandered without a book and without implements of writing, I find many such, in his manuscript books, that scarcely bear record; while some of them, broken and vague as they are, will appear valuable to those who love Shelley's mind, and desire to trace its workings.

    He projected also translating the "Hymns" of Homer; his version of several of the shorter ones remains, as well as that to Mercury already published in the "Posthumous Poems". His readings this year were chiefly Greek. Besides the "Hymns" of Homer and the "Iliad", he read the dramas of Aeschylus and Sophocles, the "Symposium" of Plato, and Arrian's "Historia Indica". In Latin, Apuleius alone is named. In English, the Bible was his constant study; he read a great portion of it aloud in the evening. Among these evening readings I find also mentioned the "Faerie Queen"; and other modern works, the production of his contemporaries, Coleridge, Wordsworth, Moore and Byron.

    His life was now spent more in thought than action—he had lost the eager spirit which believed it could achieve what it projected for the benefit of mankind. And yet in the converse of daily life Shelley was far from being a melancholy man. He was eloquent when philosophy or politics or taste were the subjects of conversation. He was playful; and indulged in the wild spirit that mocked itself and others—not in bitterness, but in sport. The author of "Nightmare Abbey" seized on some points of his character and some habits of his life when he painted Scythrop. He was not addicted to 'port or madeira,' but in youth he had read of 'Illuminati and Eleutherarchs,' and believed that he possessed the power of operating an immediate change in the minds of men and the state of society. These wild dreams had faded; sorrow and adversity had struck home; but he struggled with despondency as he did with physical pain. There are few who remember him sailing paper boats, and watching the navigation of his tiny craft with eagerness—or repeating with wild energy "The Ancient Mariner", and Southey's "Old Woman of Berkeley"; but those who do will recollect that it was in such, and in the creations of his own fancy when that was most daring and ideal, that he sheltered himself from the storms and disappointments, the pain and sorrow, that beset his life.

    No words can express the anguish he felt when his elder children were torn from him. In his first resentment against the Chancellor, on the passing of the decree, he had written a curse, in which there breathes, besides haughty indignation, all the tenderness of a father's love, which could imagine and fondly dwell upon its loss and the consequences.

    At one time, while the question was still pending, the Chancellor had said some words that seemed to intimate that Shelley should not be permitted the care of any of his children, and for a moment he feared that our infant son would be torn from us. He did not hesitate to resolve, if such were menaced, to abandon country, fortune, everything, and to escape with his child; and I find some unfinished stanzas addressed to this son, whom afterwards we lost at Rome, written under the idea that we might suddenly be forced to cross the sea, so to preserve him. This poem, as well as the one previously quoted, were not written to exhibit the pangs of distress to the public; they were the spontaneous outbursts of a man who brooded over his wrongs and woes, and was impelled to shed the grace of his genius over the uncontrollable emotions of his heart. I ought to observe that the fourth verse of this effusion is introduced in "Rosalind and Helen". When afterwards this child died at Rome, he wrote, a propos of the English burying-ground in that city: 'This spot is the repository of a sacred loss, of which the yearnings of a parent's heart are now prophetic; he is rendered immortal by love, as his memory is by death. My beloved child lies buried here. I envy death the body far less than the oppressors the minds of those whom they have torn from me. The one can only kill the body, the other crushes the affections.'

    ***



    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1818.




    TO THE NILE.



    ['Found by Mr. Townshend Meyer among the papers of Leigh Hunt, [and]
    published in the "St. James's Magazine" for March, 1876.' (Mr. H.
    Buxton Forman, C.B.; "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", Library Edition,
    1876, volume 3 page 410.) First included among Shelley's poetical works
    in Mr. Forman's Library Edition, where a facsimile of the manuscript is
    given. Composed February 4, 1818. See "Complete Works of John Keats",
    edition H. Buxton Forman, Glasgow, 1901, volume 4 page 76.]

    Month after month the gathered rains descend
    Drenching yon secret Aethiopian dells,
    And from the desert's ice-girt pinnacles
    Where Frost and Heat in strange embraces blend
    On Atlas, fields of moist snow half depend. _5
    Girt there with blasts and meteors Tempest dwells
    By Nile's aereal urn, with rapid spells
    Urging those waters to their mighty end.
    O'er Egypt's land of Memory floods are level
    And they are thine, O Nile—and well thou knowest _10
    That soul-sustaining airs and blasts of evil
    And fruits and poisons spring where'er thou flowest.
    Beware, O Man—for knowledge must to thee,
    Like the great flood to Egypt, ever be.

    ***


    PASSAGE OF THE APENNINES.



    [Composed May 4, 1818. Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
    1824. There is a copy amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian
    Library, which supplies the last word of the fragment.]

    Listen, listen, Mary mine,
    To the whisper of the Apennine,
    It bursts on the roof like the thunder's roar,
    Or like the sea on a northern shore,
    Heard in its raging ebb and flow _5
    By the captives pent in the cave below.
    The Apennine in the light of day
    Is a mighty mountain dim and gray,
    Which between the earth and sky doth lay;
    But when night comes, a chaos dread _10
    On the dim starlight then is spread,
    And the Apennine walks abroad with the storm,
    Shrouding...

    ***


    THE PAST.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    Wilt thou forget the happy hours
    Which we buried in Love's sweet bowers,
    Heaping over their corpses cold
    Blossoms and leaves, instead of mould?
    Blossoms which were the joys that fell, _5
    And leaves, the hopes that yet remain.

    2.
    Forget the dead, the past? Oh, yet
    There are ghosts that may take revenge for it,
    Memories that make the heart a tomb,
    Regrets which glide through the spirit's gloom, _10
    And with ghastly whispers tell
    That joy, once lost, is pain.

    ***


    TO MARY —.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    O Mary dear, that you were here
    With your brown eyes bright and clear.
    And your sweet voice, like a bird
    Singing love to its lone mate
    In the ivy bower disconsolate; _5
    Voice the sweetest ever heard!
    And your brow more...
    Than the ... sky
    Of this azure Italy.
    Mary dear, come to me soon, _10
    I am not well whilst thou art far;
    As sunset to the sphered moon,
    As twilight to the western star,
    Thou, beloved, art to me.

    O Mary dear, that you were here; _15
    The Castle echo whispers 'Here!'

    ***


    ON A FADED VIOLET.



    [Published by Hunt, "Literary Pocket-Book", 1821. Reprinted by Mrs.
    Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Again reprinted, with several
    variants, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. Our text is that of the
    editio princeps, 1821. A transcript is extant in a letter from Shelley
    to Sophia Stacey, dated March 7, 1820.]

    1.
    The odour from the flower is gone
    Which like thy kisses breathed on me;
    The colour from the flower is flown
    Which glowed of thee and only thee!

    2.
    A shrivelled, lifeless, vacant form, _5
    It lies on my abandoned breast,
    And mocks the heart which yet is warm,
    With cold and silent rest.

    3.
    I weep,—my tears revive it not!
    I sigh,—it breathes no more on me; _10
    Its mute and uncomplaining lot
    Is such as mine should be.

    NOTES:
    _1 odour]colour 1839.
    _2 kisses breathed]sweet eyes smiled 1839.
    _3 colour]odour 1839.
    _4 glowed]breathed 1839.
    _5 shrivelled]withered 1839.
    _8 cold and silent all editions; its cold, silent Stacey manuscript.

    ***


    LINES WRITTEN AMONG THE EUGANEAN HILLS.



    OCTOBER, 1818.

    [Composed at Este, October, 1818. Published with "Rosalind and Helen",
    1819. Amongst the late Mr. Fredk. Locker-Lampson's collections at
    Rowfant there is a manuscript of the lines (167-205) on Byron,
    interpolated after the completion of the poem.]

    Many a green isle needs must be
    In the deep wide sea of Misery,
    Or the mariner, worn and wan,
    Never thus could voyage on—
    Day and night, and night and day, _5
    Drifting on his dreary way,
    With the solid darkness black
    Closing round his vessel's track:
    Whilst above the sunless sky,
    Big with clouds, hangs heavily, _10
    And behind the tempest fleet
    Hurries on with lightning feet,
    Riving sail, and cord, and plank,
    Till the ship has almost drank
    Death from the o'er-brimming deep; _15
    And sinks down, down, like that sleep
    When the dreamer seems to be
    Weltering through eternity;
    And the dim low line before
    Of a dark and distant shore _20
    Still recedes, as ever still
    Longing with divided will,
    But no power to seek or shun,
    He is ever drifted on
    O'er the unreposing wave _25
    To the haven of the grave.
    What, if there no friends will greet;
    What, if there no heart will meet
    His with love's impatient beat;
    Wander wheresoe'er he may, _30
    Can he dream before that day
    To find refuge from distress
    In friendship's smile, in love's caress?
    Then 'twill wreak him little woe
    Whether such there be or no: _35
    Senseless is the breast, and cold,
    Which relenting love would fold;
    Bloodless are the veins and chill
    Which the pulse of pain did fill;
    Every little living nerve _40
    That from bitter words did swerve
    Round the tortured lips and brow,
    Are like sapless leaflets now
    Frozen upon December's bough.

    On the beach of a northern sea _45
    Which tempests shake eternally,
    As once the wretch there lay to sleep,
    Lies a solitary heap,
    One white skull and seven dry bones,
    On the margin of the stones, _50
    Where a few gray rushes stand,
    Boundaries of the sea and land:
    Nor is heard one voice of wail
    But the sea-mews, as they sail
    O'er the billows of the gale; _55
    Or the whirlwind up and down
    Howling, like a slaughtered town,
    When a king in glory rides
    Through the pomp of fratricides:
    Those unburied bones around _60
    There is many a mournful sound;
    There is no lament for him,
    Like a sunless vapour, dim,
    Who once clothed with life and thought
    What now moves nor murmurs not. _65

    Ay, many flowering islands lie
    In the waters of wide Agony:
    To such a one this morn was led,
    My bark by soft winds piloted:
    'Mid the mountains Euganean _70
    I stood listening to the paean
    With which the legioned rooks did hail
    The sun's uprise majestical;
    Gathering round with wings all hoar,
    Through the dewy mist they soar _75
    Like gray shades, till the eastern heaven
    Bursts, and then, as clouds of even,
    Flecked with fire and azure, lie
    In the unfathomable sky,
    So their plumes of purple grain, _80
    Starred with drops of golden rain,
    Gleam above the sunlight woods,
    As in silent multitudes
    On the morning's fitful gale
    Through the broken mist they sail, _85
    And the vapours cloven and gleaming
    Follow, down the dark steep streaming,
    Till all is bright, and clear, and still,
    Round the solitary hill.

    Beneath is spread like a green sea _90
    The waveless plain of Lombardy,
    Bounded by the vaporous air,
    Islanded by cities fair;
    Underneath Day's azure eyes
    Ocean's nursling, Venice lies, _95
    A peopled labyrinth of walls,
    Amphitrite's destined halls,
    Which her hoary sire now paves
    With his blue and beaming waves.
    Lo! the sun upsprings behind, _100
    Broad, red, radiant, half-reclined
    On the level quivering line
    Of the waters crystalline;
    And before that chasm of light,
    As within a furnace bright, _105
    Column, tower, and dome, and spire,
    Shine like obelisks of fire,
    Pointing with inconstant motion
    From the altar of dark ocean
    To the sapphire-tinted skies; _110
    As the flames of sacrifice
    From the marble shrines did rise,
    As to pierce the dome of gold
    Where Apollo spoke of old.

    Sun-girt City, thou hast been _115
    Ocean's child, and then his queen;
    Now is come a darker day,
    And thou soon must be his prey,
    If the power that raised thee here
    Hallow so thy watery bier. _120
    A less drear ruin then than now,
    With thy conquest-branded brow
    Stooping to the slave of slaves
    From thy throne, among the waves
    Wilt thou be, when the sea-mew _125
    Flies, as once before it flew,
    O'er thine isles depopulate,
    And all is in its ancient state,
    Save where many a palace gate _130
    With green sea-flowers overgrown
    Like a rock of Ocean's own,
    Topples o'er the abandoned sea
    As the tides change sullenly.
    The fisher on his watery way,
    Wandering at the close of day, _135
    Will spread his sail and seize his oar
    Till he pass the gloomy shore,
    Lest thy dead should, from their sleep
    Bursting o'er the starlight deep,
    Lead a rapid masque of death _140
    O'er the waters of his path.

    Those who alone thy towers behold
    Quivering through aereal gold,
    As I now behold them here,
    Would imagine not they were _145
    Sepulchres, where human forms,
    Like pollution-nourished worms,
    To the corpse of greatness cling,
    Murdered, and now mouldering:
    But if Freedom should awake _150
    In her omnipotence, and shake
    From the Celtic Anarch's hold
    All the keys of dungeons cold,
    Where a hundred cities lie
    Chained like thee, ingloriously, _155
    Thou and all thy sister band
    Might adorn this sunny land,
    Twining memories of old time
    With new virtues more sublime;
    If not, perish thou and they!— _160
    Clouds which stain truth's rising day
    By her sun consumed away—
    Earth can spare ye: while like flowers,
    In the waste of years and hours,
    From your dust new nations spring _165
    With more kindly blossoming.

    Perish—let there only be
    Floating o'er thy hearthless sea
    As the garment of thy sky
    Clothes the world immortally, _170
    One remembrance, more sublime
    Than the tattered pall of time,
    Which scarce hides thy visage wan;—
    That a tempest-cleaving Swan
    Of the songs of Albion, _175
    Driven from his ancestral streams
    By the might of evil dreams,
    Found a nest in thee; and Ocean
    Welcomed him with such emotion
    That its joy grew his, and sprung _180
    From his lips like music flung
    O'er a mighty thunder-fit,
    Chastening terror:—what though yet
    Poesy's unfailing River,
    Which through Albion winds forever _185
    Lashing with melodious wave
    Many a sacred Poet's grave,
    Mourn its latest nursling fled?
    What though thou with all thy dead
    Scarce can for this fame repay _190
    Aught thine own? oh, rather say
    Though thy sins and slaveries foul
    Overcloud a sunlike soul?
    As the ghost of Homer clings
    Round Scamander's wasting springs; _195
    As divinest Shakespeare's might
    Fills Avon and the world with light
    Like omniscient power which he
    Imaged 'mid mortality;
    As the love from Petrarch's urn, _200
    Yet amid yon hills doth burn,
    A quenchless lamp by which the heart
    Sees things unearthly;—so thou art,
    Mighty spirit—so shall be
    The City that did refuge thee. _205

    Lo, the sun floats up the sky
    Like thought-winged Liberty,
    Till the universal light
    Seems to level plain and height;
    From the sea a mist has spread, _210
    And the beams of morn lie dead
    On the towers of Venice now,
    Like its glory long ago.
    By the skirts of that gray cloud
    Many-domed Padua proud _215
    Stands, a peopled solitude,
    'Mid the harvest-shining plain,
    Where the peasant heaps his grain
    In the garner of his foe,
    And the milk-white oxen slow _220
    With the purple vintage strain,
    Heaped upon the creaking wain,
    That the brutal Celt may swill
    Drunken sleep with savage will;
    And the sickle to the sword _225
    Lies unchanged, though many a lord,
    Like a weed whose shade is poison,
    Overgrows this region's foison,
    Sheaves of whom are ripe to come
    To destruction's harvest-home: _230
    Men must reap the things they sow,
    Force from force must ever flow,
    Or worse; but 'tis a bitter woe
    That love or reason cannot change
    The despot's rage, the slave's revenge. _235

    Padua, thou within whose walls
    Those mute guests at festivals,
    Son and Mother, Death and Sin,
    Played at dice for Ezzelin,
    Till Death cried, "I win, I win!" _240
    And Sin cursed to lose the wager,
    But Death promised, to assuage her,
    That he would petition for
    Her to be made Vice-Emperor,
    When the destined years were o'er, _245
    Over all between the Po
    And the eastern Alpine snow,
    Under the mighty Austrian.
    Sin smiled so as Sin only can,
    And since that time, ay, long before, _250
    Both have ruled from shore to shore,—
    That incestuous pair, who follow
    Tyrants as the sun the swallow,
    As Repentance follows Crime,
    And as changes follow Time. _255

    In thine halls the lamp of learning,
    Padua, now no more is burning;
    Like a meteor, whose wild way
    Is lost over the grave of day,
    It gleams betrayed and to betray: _260
    Once remotest nations came
    To adore that sacred flame,
    When it lit not many a hearth
    On this cold and gloomy earth:
    Now new fires from antique light _265
    Spring beneath the wide world's might;
    But their spark lies dead in thee,
    Trampled out by Tyranny.
    As the Norway woodman quells,
    In the depth of piny dells, _270
    One light flame among the brakes,
    While the boundless forest shakes,
    And its mighty trunks are torn
    By the fire thus lowly born:
    The spark beneath his feet is dead, _275
    He starts to see the flames it fed
    Howling through the darkened sky
    With a myriad tongues victoriously,
    And sinks down in fear: so thou,
    O Tyranny, beholdest now _280
    Light around thee, and thou hearest
    The loud flames ascend, and fearest:
    Grovel on the earth; ay, hide
    In the dust thy purple pride!

    Noon descends around me now: _285
    'Tis the noon of autumn's glow,
    When a soft and purple mist
    Like a vaporous amethyst,
    Or an air-dissolved star
    Mingling light and fragrance, far _290
    From the curved horizon's bound
    To the point of Heaven's profound,
    Fills the overflowing sky;
    And the plains that silent lie
    Underneath, the leaves unsodden _295
    Where the infant Frost has trodden
    With his morning-winged feet,
    Whose bright print is gleaming yet;
    And the red and golden vines,
    Piercing with their trellised lines _300
    The rough, dark-skirted wilderness;
    The dun and bladed grass no less,
    Pointing from this hoary tower
    In the windless air; the flower
    Glimmering at my feet; the line _305
    Of the olive-sandalled Apennine
    In the south dimly islanded;
    And the Alps, whose snows are spread
    High between the clouds and sun;
    And of living things each one; _310
    And my spirit which so long
    Darkened this swift stream of song,—
    Interpenetrated lie
    By the glory of the sky:
    Be it love, light, harmony, _315
    Odour, or the soul of all
    Which from Heaven like dew doth fall,
    Or the mind which feeds this verse
    Peopling the lone universe.

    Noon descends, and after noon _320
    Autumn's evening meets me soon,
    Leading the infantine moon,
    And that one star, which to her
    Almost seems to minister
    Half the crimson light she brings _325
    From the sunset's radiant springs:
    And the soft dreams of the morn
    (Which like winged winds had borne
    To that silent isle, which lies
    Mid remembered agonies, _330
    The frail bark of this lone being)
    Pass, to other sufferers fleeing,
    And its ancient pilot, Pain,
    Sits beside the helm again.

    Other flowering isles must be _335
    In the sea of Life and Agony:
    Other spirits float and flee
    O'er that gulf: even now, perhaps,
    On some rock the wild wave wraps,
    With folded wings they waiting sit _340
    For my bark, to pilot it
    To some calm and blooming cove,
    Where for me, and those I love,
    May a windless bower be built,
    Far from passion, pain, and guilt, _345
    In a dell mid lawny hills,
    Which the wild sea-murmur fills,
    And soft sunshine, and the sound
    Of old forests echoing round,
    And the light and smell divine _350
    Of all flowers that breathe and shine:
    We may live so happy there,
    That the Spirits of the Air,
    Envying us, may even entice
    To our healing Paradise _355
    The polluting multitude;
    But their rage would be subdued
    By that clime divine and calm,
    And the winds whose wings rain balm
    On the uplifted soul, and leaves _360
    Under which the bright sea heaves;
    While each breathless interval
    In their whisperings musical
    The inspired soul supplies
    With its own deep melodies; _365
    And the love which heals all strife
    Circling, like the breath of life,
    All things in that sweet abode
    With its own mild brotherhood,
    They, not it, would change; and soon _370
    Every sprite beneath the moon
    Would repent its envy vain,
    And the earth grow young again.

    NOTES:
    _54 seamews 1819; seamew's Rossetti.
    _115 Sun-girt]Sea-girt cj. Palgrave.
    _165 From your dust new 1819;
    From thy dust shall Rowfant manuscript (heading of lines 167-205).
    _175 songs 1819; sons cj. Forman.
    _278 a 1819; wanting, 1839.

    ***


    SCENE FROM 'TASSO'.



    [Composed, 1818. Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    MADDALO, A COURTIER.
    MALPIGLIO, A POET.
    PIGNA, A MINISTER.
    ALBANO, AN USHER.


    MADDALO
    :
    No access to the Duke! You have not said
    That the Count Maddalo would speak with him?


    PIGNA
    :
    Did you inform his Grace that Signor Pigna
    Waits with state papers for his signature?


    MALPIGLIO
    :
    The Lady Leonora cannot know _5
    That I have written a sonnet to her fame,
    In which I ... Venus and Adonis.
    You should not take my gold and serve me not.


    ALBANO
    :
    In truth I told her, and she smiled and said,
    'If I am Venus, thou, coy Poesy, _10
    Art the Adonis whom I love, and he
    The Erymanthian boar that wounded him.'
    O trust to me, Signor Malpiglio,
    Those nods and smiles were favours worth the zechin.


    MALPIGLIO
    :
    The words are twisted in some double sense _15
    That I reach not: the smiles fell not on me.


    PIGNA
    :
    How are the Duke and Duchess occupied?


    ALBANO
    :
    Buried in some strange talk. The Duke was leaning,
    His finger on his brow, his lips unclosed.
    The Princess sate within the window-seat, _20
    And so her face was hid; but on her knee
    Her hands were clasped, veined, and pale as snow,
    And quivering—young Tasso, too, was there.


    MADDALO
    :
    Thou seest on whom from thine own worshipped heaven
    Thou drawest down smiles—they did not rain on thee. _25


    MALPIGLIO
    :
    Would they were parching lightnings for his sake
    On whom they fell!


    ***


    SONG FOR 'TASSO'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    I loved—alas! our life is love;
    But when we cease to breathe and move
    I do suppose love ceases too.
    I thought, but not as now I do,
    Keen thoughts and bright of linked lore, _5
    Of all that men had thought before.
    And all that Nature shows, and more.

    2.
    And still I love and still I think,
    But strangely, for my heart can drink
    The dregs of such despair, and live, _10
    And love;...
    And if I think, my thoughts come fast,
    I mix the present with the past,
    And each seems uglier than the last.

    3.
    Sometimes I see before me flee _15
    A silver spirit's form, like thee,
    O Leonora, and I sit
    ...still watching it,
    Till by the grated casement's ledge
    It fades, with such a sigh, as sedge _20
    Breathes o'er the breezy streamlet's edge.

    ***


    INVOCATION TO MISERY.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", September 8, 1832. Reprinted (as
    "Misery, a Fragment") by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st
    edition. Our text is that of 1839. A pencil copy of this poem is
    amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D.
    Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 38. The readings of this copy
    are indicated by the letter B. in the footnotes.]

    1.
    Come, be happy!—sit near me,
    Shadow-vested Misery:
    Coy, unwilling, silent bride,
    Mourning in thy robe of pride,
    Desolation—deified! _5

    2.
    Come, be happy!—sit near me:
    Sad as I may seem to thee,
    I am happier far than thou,
    Lady, whose imperial brow
    Is endiademed with woe. _10

    3.
    Misery! we have known each other,
    Like a sister and a brother
    Living in the same lone home,
    Many years—we must live some
    Hours or ages yet to come. _15

    4.
    'Tis an evil lot, and yet
    Let us make the best of it;
    If love can live when pleasure dies,
    We two will love, till in our eyes
    This heart's Hell seem Paradise. _20

    5.
    Come, be happy!—lie thee down
    On the fresh grass newly mown,
    Where the Grasshopper doth sing
    Merrily—one joyous thing
    In a world of sorrowing! _25

    6.
    There our tent shall be the willow,
    And mine arm shall be thy pillow;
    Sounds and odours, sorrowful
    Because they once were sweet, shall lull
    Us to slumber, deep and dull. _30

    7.
    Ha! thy frozen pulses flutter
    With a love thou darest not utter.
    Thou art murmuring—thou art weeping—
    Is thine icy bosom leaping
    While my burning heart lies sleeping? _35

    8.
    Kiss me;—oh! thy lips are cold:
    Round my neck thine arms enfold—
    They are soft, but chill and dead;
    And thy tears upon my head
    Burn like points of frozen lead. _40

    9.
    Hasten to the bridal bed—
    Underneath the grave 'tis spread:
    In darkness may our love be hid,
    Oblivion be our coverlid—
    We may rest, and none forbid. _45

    10.
    Clasp me till our hearts be grown
    Like two shadows into one;
    Till this dreadful transport may
    Like a vapour fade away,
    In the sleep that lasts alway. _50

    11.
    We may dream, in that long sleep,
    That we are not those who weep;
    E'en as Pleasure dreams of thee,
    Life-deserting Misery,
    Thou mayst dream of her with me. _55

    12.
    Let us laugh, and make our mirth,
    At the shadows of the earth,
    As dogs bay the moonlight clouds,
    Which, like spectres wrapped in shrouds,
    Pass o'er night in multitudes. _60

    13.
    All the wide world, beside us,
    Show like multitudinous
    Puppets passing from a scene;
    What but mockery can they mean,
    Where I am—where thou hast been? _65

    NOTES:
    _1 near B., 1839; by 1832.
    _8 happier far]merrier yet B.
    _15 Hours or]Years and 1832.
    _17 best]most 1832.
    _19 We two will]We will 1832.
    _27 mine arm shall be thy B., 1839; thine arm shall be my 1832.
    _33 represented by asterisks, 1832.
    _34, _35 Thou art murmuring, thou art weeping,
    Whilst my burning bosom's leaping 1832;
    Was thine icy bosom leaping
    While my burning heart was sleeping B.
    _40 frozen 1832, 1839, B.; molten cj. Forman.
    _44 be]is B.
    _47 shadows]lovers 1832, B.
    _59 which B., 1839; that 1832.
    _62 Show]Are 1832, B.
    _63 Puppets passing]Shadows shifting 1832; Shadows passing B.
    _64, _65 So B.: What but mockery may they mean?
    Where am I?—Where thou hast been 1832.

    ***


    STANZAS WRITTEN IN DEJECTION, NEAR NAPLES.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, where it is dated
    'December, 1818.' A draft of stanza 1 is amongst the Boscombe
    manuscripts. (Garnett).]

    1.
    The sun is warm, the sky is clear,
    The waves are dancing fast and bright,
    Blue isles and snowy mountains wear
    The purple noon's transparent might,
    The breath of the moist earth is light, _5
    Around its unexpanded buds;
    Like many a voice of one delight,
    The winds, the birds, the ocean floods,
    The City's voice itself, is soft like Solitude's.

    2.
    I see the Deep's untrampled floor _10
    With green and purple seaweeds strown;
    I see the waves upon the shore,
    Like light dissolved in star-showers, thrown:
    I sit upon the sands alone,—
    The lightning of the noontide ocean _15
    Is flashing round me, and a tone
    Arises from its measured motion,
    How sweet! did any heart now share in my emotion.

    3.
    Alas! I have nor hope nor health,
    Nor peace within nor calm around, _20
    Nor that content surpassing wealth
    The sage in meditation found,
    And walked with inward glory crowned—
    Nor fame, nor power, nor love, nor leisure.
    Others I see whom these surround— _25
    Smiling they live, and call life pleasure;—
    To me that cup has been dealt in another measure.

    4.
    Yet now despair itself is mild,
    Even as the winds and waters are;
    I could lie down like a tired child, _30
    And weep away the life of care
    Which I have borne and yet must bear,
    Till death like sleep might steal on me,
    And I might feel in the warm air
    My cheek grow cold, and hear the sea _35
    Breathe o'er my dying brain its last monotony.

    5.
    Some might lament that I were cold,
    As I, when this sweet day is gone,
    Which my lost heart, too soon grown old,
    Insults with this untimely moan; _40
    They might lament—for I am one
    Whom men love not,—and yet regret,
    Unlike this day, which, when the sun
    Shall on its stainless glory set,
    Will linger, though enjoyed, like joy in memory yet. _45

    NOTES:
    _4 might Boscombe manuscript, Medwin 1847; light 1824, 1839.
    _5 The...light Boscombe manuscript, 1839, Medwin 1847;
    omitted, 1824. moist earth Boscombe manuscript;
    moist air 1839; west wind Medwin 1847.
    _17 measured 1824; mingled 1847.
    _18 did any heart now 1824; if any heart could Medwin 1847.
    _31 the 1824; this Medwin 1847.
    _36 dying 1824; outworn Medwin 1847.

    ***


    THE WOODMAN AND THE NIGHTINGALE.



    [Published in part (1-67) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824;
    the remainder (68-70) by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    A woodman whose rough heart was out of tune
    (I think such hearts yet never came to good)
    Hated to hear, under the stars or moon,

    One nightingale in an interfluous wood
    Satiate the hungry dark with melody;— _5
    And as a vale is watered by a flood,

    Or as the moonlight fills the open sky
    Struggling with darkness—as a tuberose
    Peoples some Indian dell with scents which lie

    Like clouds above the flower from which they rose, _10
    The singing of that happy nightingale
    In this sweet forest, from the golden close

    Of evening till the star of dawn may fail,
    Was interfused upon the silentness;
    The folded roses and the violets pale _15

    Heard her within their slumbers, the abyss
    Of heaven with all its planets; the dull ear
    Of the night-cradled earth; the loneliness

    Of the circumfluous waters,—every sphere
    And every flower and beam and cloud and wave, _20
    And every wind of the mute atmosphere,

    And every beast stretched in its rugged cave,
    And every bird lulled on its mossy bough,
    And every silver moth fresh from the grave

    Which is its cradle—ever from below _25
    Aspiring like one who loves too fair, too far,
    To be consumed within the purest glow

    Of one serene and unapproached star,
    As if it were a lamp of earthly light,
    Unconscious, as some human lovers are, _30

    Itself how low, how high beyond all height
    The heaven where it would perish!—and every form
    That worshipped in the temple of the night

    Was awed into delight, and by the charm
    Girt as with an interminable zone, _35
    Whilst that sweet bird, whose music was a storm

    Of sound, shook forth the dull oblivion
    Out of their dreams; harmony became love
    In every soul but one.

    ...

    And so this man returned with axe and saw _40
    At evening close from killing the tall treen,
    The soul of whom by Nature's gentle law

    Was each a wood-nymph, and kept ever green
    The pavement and the roof of the wild copse,
    Chequering the sunlight of the blue serene _45

    With jagged leaves,—and from the forest tops
    Singing the winds to sleep—or weeping oft
    Fast showers of aereal water-drops

    Into their mother's bosom, sweet and soft,
    Nature's pure tears which have no bitterness;— _50
    Around the cradles of the birds aloft

    They spread themselves into the loveliness
    Of fan-like leaves, and over pallid flowers
    Hang like moist clouds:—or, where high branches kiss,

    Make a green space among the silent bowers, _55
    Like a vast fane in a metropolis,
    Surrounded by the columns and the towers

    All overwrought with branch-like traceries
    In which there is religion—and the mute
    Persuasion of unkindled melodies, _60

    Odours and gleams and murmurs, which the lute
    Of the blind pilot-spirit of the blast
    Stirs as it sails, now grave and now acute,

    Wakening the leaves and waves, ere it has passed
    To such brief unison as on the brain _65
    One tone, which never can recur, has cast,
    One accent never to return again.

    ...

    The world is full of Woodmen who expel
    Love's gentle Dryads from the haunts of life,
    And vex the nightingales in every dell. _70

    NOTE:
    _8 —or as a tuberose cj. A.C. Bradley.

    ***


    MARENGHI. (This fragment refers to an event told in Sismondi's
    "Histoire des Republiques Italiennes", which occurred during the war
    when Florence finally subdued Pisa, and reduced it to a
    province.—[MRS. SHELLEY'S NOTE, 1824.])

    [Published in part (stanzas 7-15.) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
    1824; stanzas 1-28 by W.M. Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B.
    S.", 1870. The Boscombe manuscript—evidently a first draft—from which
    (through Dr. Garnett) Rossetti derived the text of 1870 is now at the
    Bodleian, and has recently been collated by Mr. C.D. Locock, to whom
    the enlarged and amended text here printed is owing. The substitution,
    in title and text, of "Marenghi" for "Mazenghi" (1824) is due to
    Rossetti. Here as elsewhere in the footnotes B. = the Bodleian
    manuscript.]

    1.
    Let those who pine in pride or in revenge,
    Or think that ill for ill should be repaid,
    Who barter wrong for wrong, until the exchange
    Ruins the merchants of such thriftless trade,
    Visit the tower of Vado, and unlearn _5
    Such bitter faith beside Marenghi's urn.

    2.
    A massy tower yet overhangs the town,
    A scattered group of ruined dwellings now...

    ...

    3.
    Another scene are wise Etruria knew
    Its second ruin through internal strife _10
    And tyrants through the breach of discord threw
    The chain which binds and kills. As death to life,
    As winter to fair flowers (though some be poison)
    So Monarchy succeeds to Freedom's foison.

    4.
    In Pisa's church a cup of sculptured gold _15
    Was brimming with the blood of feuds forsworn:
    A Sacrament more holy ne'er of old
    Etrurians mingled mid the shades forlorn
    Of moon-illumined forests, when...

    5.
    And reconciling factions wet their lips _20
    With that dread wine, and swear to keep each spirit
    Undarkened by their country's last eclipse...

    ...

    6.
    Was Florence the liberticide? that band
    Of free and glorious brothers who had planted,
    Like a green isle mid Aethiopian sand, _25
    A nation amid slaveries, disenchanted
    Of many impious faiths—wise, just—do they,
    Does Florence, gorge the sated tyrants' prey?

    7.
    O foster-nurse of man's abandoned glory,
    Since Athens, its great mother, sunk in splendour; _30
    Thou shadowest forth that mighty shape in story,
    As ocean its wrecked fanes, severe yet tender:—
    The light-invested angel Poesy
    Was drawn from the dim world to welcome thee.

    8.
    And thou in painting didst transcribe all taught _35
    By loftiest meditations; marble knew
    The sculptor's fearless soul—and as he wrought,
    The grace of his own power and freedom grew.
    And more than all, heroic, just, sublime,
    Thou wart among the false...was this thy crime? _40

    9.
    Yes; and on Pisa's marble walls the twine
    Of direst weeds hangs garlanded—the snake
    Inhabits its wrecked palaces;—in thine
    A beast of subtler venom now doth make
    Its lair, and sits amid their glories overthrown, _45
    And thus thy victim's fate is as thine own.

    10.
    The sweetest flowers are ever frail and rare,
    And love and freedom blossom but to wither;
    And good and ill like vines entangled are,
    So that their grapes may oft be plucked together;— _50
    Divide the vintage ere thou drink, then make
    Thy heart rejoice for dead Marenghi's sake.

    10a.
    [Albert] Marenghi was a Florentine;
    If he had wealth, or children, or a wife
    Or friends, [or farm] or cherished thoughts which twine _55
    The sights and sounds of home with life's own life
    Of these he was despoiled and Florence sent...

    ...

    11.
    No record of his crime remains in story,
    But if the morning bright as evening shone, _60
    It was some high and holy deed, by glory
    Pursued into forgetfulness, which won
    From the blind crowd he made secure and free
    The patriot's meed, toil, death, and infamy.

    12.
    For when by sound of trumpet was declared
    A price upon his life, and there was set _65
    A penalty of blood on all who shared
    So much of water with him as might wet
    His lips, which speech divided not—he went
    Alone, as you may guess, to banishment.

    13.
    Amid the mountains, like a hunted beast,
    He hid himself, and hunger, toil, and cold, _70
    Month after month endured; it was a feast
    Whene'er he found those globes of deep-red gold
    Which in the woods the strawberry-tree doth bear,
    Suspended in their emerald atmosphere. _75

    14.
    And in the roofless huts of vast morasses,
    Deserted by the fever-stricken serf,
    All overgrown with reeds and long rank grasses,
    And hillocks heaped of moss-inwoven turf,
    And where the huge and speckled aloe made, _80
    Rooted in stones, a broad and pointed shade,—

    15.
    He housed himself. There is a point of strand
    Near Vado's tower and town; and on one side
    The treacherous marsh divides it from the land,
    Shadowed by pine and ilex forests wide, _85
    And on the other, creeps eternally,
    Through muddy weeds, the shallow sullen sea.

    16.
    Here the earth's breath is pestilence, and few
    But things whose nature is at war with life—
    Snakes and ill worms—endure its mortal dew.
    The trophies of the clime's victorious strife— _90
    And ringed horns which the buffalo did wear,
    And the wolf's dark gray scalp who tracked him there.

    17.
    And at the utmost point...stood there
    The relics of a reed-inwoven cot, _95
    Thatched with broad flags. An outlawed murderer
    Had lived seven days there: the pursuit was hot
    When he was cold. The birds that were his grave
    Fell dead after their feast in Vado's wave.

    18.
    There must have burned within Marenghi's breast _100
    That fire, more warm and bright than life and hope,
    (Which to the martyr makes his dungeon...
    More joyous than free heaven's majestic cope
    To his oppressor), warring with decay,—
    Or he could ne'er have lived years, day by day. _105

    19.
    Nor was his state so lone as you might think.
    He had tamed every newt and snake and toad,
    And every seagull which sailed down to drink
    Those freshes ere the death-mist went abroad.
    And each one, with peculiar talk and play, _110
    Wiled, not untaught, his silent time away.

    20.
    And the marsh-meteors, like tame beasts, at night
    Came licking with blue tongues his veined feet;
    And he would watch them, as, like spirits bright,
    In many entangled figures quaint and sweet _115
    To some enchanted music they would dance—
    Until they vanished at the first moon-glance.

    21.
    He mocked the stars by grouping on each weed
    The summer dew-globes in the golden dawn;
    And, ere the hoar-frost languished, he could read _120
    Its pictured path, as on bare spots of lawn
    Its delicate brief touch in silver weaves
    The likeness of the wood's remembered leaves.

    22.
    And many a fresh Spring morn would he awaken—
    While yet the unrisen sun made glow, like iron _125
    Quivering in crimson fire, the peaks unshaken
    Of mountains and blue isles which did environ
    With air-clad crags that plain of land and sea,—
    And feel ... liberty.

    23.
    And in the moonless nights when the dun ocean _130
    Heaved underneath wide heaven, star-impearled,
    Starting from dreams...
    Communed with the immeasurable world;
    And felt his life beyond his limbs dilated,
    Till his mind grew like that it contemplated. _135

    24.
    His food was the wild fig and strawberry;
    The milky pine-nuts which the autumn-blast
    Shakes into the tall grass; or such small fry
    As from the sea by winter-storms are cast;
    And the coarse bulbs of iris-flowers he found _140
    Knotted in clumps under the spongy ground.

    25.
    And so were kindled powers and thoughts which made
    His solitude less dark. When memory came
    (For years gone by leave each a deepening shade),
    His spirit basked in its internal flame,— _145
    As, when the black storm hurries round at night,
    The fisher basks beside his red firelight.

    26.
    Yet human hopes and cares and faiths and errors,
    Like billows unawakened by the wind,
    Slept in Marenghi still; but that all terrors, _150
    Weakness, and doubt, had withered in his mind.
    His couch...

    ...

    27.
    And, when he saw beneath the sunset's planet
    A black ship walk over the crimson ocean,—
    Its pennon streaming on the blasts that fan it, _155
    Its sails and ropes all tense and without motion,
    Like the dark ghost of the unburied even
    Striding athwart the orange-coloured heaven,—

    28.
    The thought of his own kind who made the soul
    Which sped that winged shape through night and day,— _160
    The thought of his own country...

    ...

    NOTES:
    _3 Who B.; Or 1870.
    _6 Marenghi's 1870; Mazenghi's B.
    _7 town 1870; sea B.
    _8 ruined 1870; squalid B. ('the whole line is cancelled,' Locock).
    _11 threw 1870; cancelled, B.
    _17 A Sacrament more B.; At Sacrament: more 1870.
    _18 mid B.; with 1870.
    _19 forests when... B.; forests. 1870.
    _23, _24 that band Of free and glorious brothers who had 1870; omitted, B.
    _25 a 1870; one B.
    _27 wise, just—do they 1870; omitted, B.
    _28 Does 1870; Doth B. prey 1870; spoil B.
    _33 angel 1824; Herald [?] B.
    _34 to welcome thee 1824; cancelled for... by thee B.
    _42 direst 1824; Desert B.
    _45 sits amid 1824 amid cancelled for soils (?) B.
    _53-_57 Albert...sent B.; omitted 1824, 1870. Albert cancelled B.:
    Pietro is the correct name.
    _53 Marenghi]Mazenghi B.
    _55 farm doubtful: perh. fame (Locock).
    _62 he 1824; thus B.
    _70 Amid the mountains 1824; Mid desert mountains [?] B.
    _71 toil, and cold]cold and toil editions 1824, 1839.
    _92, _93 And... there B. (see Editor's Note); White bones, and locks of
    dun and yellow hair, And ringed horns which buffaloes did wear— 1870.
    _94 at the utmost point 1870; cancelled for when (where?) B.
    _95 reed B.; weed 1870.
    _99 after B.; upon 1870.
    _100 burned within Marenghi's breast B.;
    lived within Marenghi's heart 1870.
    _101 and B.; or 1870.
    _103 free B.; the 1870.
    _109 freshes B.; omitted, 1870.
    _118 by 1870; with B.
    _119 dew-globes B.; dewdrops 1870.
    _120 languished B.; vanished 1870.
    _121 path, as on [bare] B.; footprints, as on 1870.
    _122 silver B.; silence 1870.
    _130 And in the moonless nights 1870; cancelled, B. dun B.;
    dim 1870.
    _131 Heaved 1870; cancelled, B. wide B.;
    the 1870. star-impearled B.; omitted, 1870.
    _132 Starting from dreams 1870; cancelled for He B.
    _137 autumn B.; autumnal 1870.
    _138 or B.; and 1870.
    _155 pennon B.; pennons 1870.
    _158 athwart B.; across 1870.

    ***


    SONNET.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    Our text is that of the "Poetical Works", 1839.]

    Lift not the painted veil which those who live
    Call Life: though unreal shapes be pictured there,
    And it but mimic all we would believe
    With colours idly spread,—behind, lurk Fear
    And Hope, twin Destinies; who ever weave _5
    Their shadows, o'er the chasm, sightless and drear.
    I knew one who had lifted it—he sought,
    For his lost heart was tender, things to love
    But found them not, alas! nor was there aught
    The world contains, the which he could approve. _10
    Through the unheeding many he did move,
    A splendour among shadows, a bright blot
    Upon this gloomy scene, a Spirit that strove
    For truth, and like the Preacher found it not.

    NOTES:
    _6 Their...drear 1839;
    The shadows, which the world calls substance, there 1824.
    _7 who had lifted 1839; who lifted 1824.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: TO BYRON.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    O mighty mind, in whose deep stream this age
    Shakes like a reed in the unheeding storm,
    Why dost thou curb not thine own sacred rage?

    ***


    FRAGMENT: APOSTROPHE TO SILENCE.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862. A transcript by
    Mrs. Shelley, given to Charles Cowden Clarke, presents one or two
    variants.]

    Silence! Oh, well are Death and Sleep and Thou
    Three brethren named, the guardians gloomy-winged
    Of one abyss, where life, and truth, and joy
    Are swallowed up—yet spare me, Spirit, pity me,
    Until the sounds I hear become my soul, _5
    And it has left these faint and weary limbs,
    To track along the lapses of the air
    This wandering melody until it rests
    Among lone mountains in some...

    NOTES:
    _4 Spirit 1862; O Spirit C.C.C. manuscript.
    _8 This wandering melody 1862;
    These wandering melodies... C.C.C. manuscript.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THE LAKE'S MARGIN.



    [Published by W.M. Rossetti, 1870.]

    The fierce beasts of the woods and wildernesses
    Track not the steps of him who drinks of it;
    For the light breezes, which for ever fleet
    Around its margin, heap the sand thereon.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'MY HEAD IS WILD WITH WEEPING'.



    [Published by W.M. Rossetti, 1870.]

    My head is wild with weeping for a grief
    Which is the shadow of a gentle mind.
    I walk into the air (but no relief
    To seek,—or haply, if I sought, to find;
    It came unsought);—to wonder that a chief _5
    Among men's spirits should be cold and blind.

    NOTE:
    _4 find cj. A.C. Bradley.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THE VINE-SHROUD.



    [Published by W.M. Rossetti, 1870.]

    Flourishing vine, whose kindling clusters glow
    Beneath the autumnal sun, none taste of thee;
    For thou dost shroud a ruin, and below
    The rotting bones of dead antiquity.

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1818, BY MRS. SHELLEY.

    We often hear of persons disappointed by a first visit to Italy. This was not Shelley's case. The aspect of its nature, its sunny sky, its majestic storms, of the luxuriant vegetation of the country, and the noble marble-built cities, enchanted him. The sight of the works of art was full enjoyment and wonder. He had not studied pictures or statues before; he now did so with the eye of taste, that referred not to the rules of schools, but to those of Nature and truth. The first entrance to Rome opened to him a scene of remains of antique grandeur that far surpassed his expectations; and the unspeakable beauty of Naples and its environs added to the impression he received of the transcendent and glorious beauty of Italy.

    Our winter was spent at Naples. Here he wrote the fragments of "Marenghi" and "The Woodman and the Nightingale", which he afterwards threw aside. At this time, Shelley suffered greatly in health. He put himself under the care of a medical man, who promised great things, and made him endure severe bodily pain, without any good results. Constant and poignant physical suffering exhausted him; and though he preserved the appearance of cheerfulness, and often greatly enjoyed our wanderings in the environs of Naples, and our excursions on its sunny sea, yet many hours were passed when his thoughts, shadowed by illness, became gloomy,—and then he escaped to solitude, and in verses, which he hid from fear of wounding me, poured forth morbid but too natural bursts of discontent and sadness. One looks back with unspeakable regret and gnawing remorse to such periods; fancying that, had one been more alive to the nature of his feelings, and more attentive to soothe them, such would not have existed. And yet, enjoying as he appeared to do every sight or influence of earth or sky, it was difficult to imagine that any melancholy he showed was aught but the effect of the constant pain to which he was a martyr.

    We lived in utter solitude. And such is often not the nurse of cheerfulness; for then, at least with those who have been exposed to adversity, the mind broods over its sorrows too intently; while the society of the enlightened, the witty, and the wise, enables us to forget ourselves by making us the sharers of the thoughts of others, which is a portion of the philosophy of happiness. Shelley never liked society in numbers,—it harassed and wearied him; but neither did he like loneliness, and usually, when alone, sheltered himself against memory and reflection in a book. But, with one or two whom he loved, he gave way to wild and joyous spirits, or in more serious conversation expounded his opinions with vivacity and eloquence. If an argument arose, no man ever argued better. He was clear, logical, and earnest, in supporting his own views; attentive, patient, and impartial, while listening to those on the adverse side. Had not a wall of prejudice been raised at this time between him and his countrymen, how many would have sought the acquaintance of one whom to know was to love and to revere! How many of the more enlightened of his contemporaries have since regretted that they did not seek him! how very few knew his worth while he lived! and, of those few, several were withheld by timidity or envy from declaring their sense of it. But no man was ever more enthusiastically loved—more looked up to, as one superior to his fellows in intellectual endowments and moral worth, by the few who knew him well, and had sufficient nobleness of soul to appreciate his superiority. His excellence is now acknowledged; but, even while admitted, not duly appreciated. For who, except those who were acquainted with him, can imagine his unwearied benevolence, his generosity, his systematic forbearance? And still less is his vast superiority in intellectual attainments sufficiently understood—his sagacity, his clear understanding, his learning, his prodigious memory. All these as displayed in conversation, were known to few while he lived, and are now silent in the tomb:


    'Ahi orbo mondo ingrato!
    Gran cagion hai di dever pianger meco;
    Che quel ben ch' era in te, perdut' hai seco.'

    ***


    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1819.




    LINES WRITTEN DURING THE CASTLEREAGH ADMINISTRATION.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", December 8, 1832; reprinted,
    "Poetical Works", 1839. There is a transcript amongst the Harvard
    manuscripts, and another in the possession of Mr. C.W. Frederickson of
    Brooklyn. Variants from these two sources are given by Professor
    Woodberry, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", Centenary Edition,
    1893, volume 3 pages 225, 226. The transcripts are referred to in our
    footnotes as Harvard and Fred. respectively.]

    1.
    Corpses are cold in the tomb;
    Stones on the pavement are dumb;
    Abortions are dead in the womb,
    And their mothers look pale—like the death-white shore
    Of Albion, free no more. _5

    2.
    Her sons are as stones in the way—
    They are masses of senseless clay—
    They are trodden, and move not away,—
    The abortion with which SHE travaileth
    Is Liberty, smitten to death. _10

    3.
    Then trample and dance, thou Oppressor!
    For thy victim is no redresser;
    Thou art sole lord and possessor
    Of her corpses, and clods, and abortions—they pave
    Thy path to the grave. _15

    4.
    Hearest thou the festival din
    Of Death, and Destruction, and Sin,
    And Wealth crying "Havoc!" within?
    'Tis the bacchanal triumph that makes Truth dumb,
    Thine Epithalamium. _20

    5.
    Ay, marry thy ghastly wife!
    Let Fear and Disquiet and Strife
    Spread thy couch in the chamber of Life!
    Marry Ruin, thou Tyrant! and Hell be thy guide
    To the bed of the bride! _25

    NOTES:
    _4 death-white Harvard, Fred.; white 1832, 1839.
    _16 festival Harvard, Fred., 1839; festal 1832.
    _19 that Fred.; which Harvard 1832.
    _22 Disquiet Harvard, Fred., 1839; Disgust 1832.
    _24 Hell Fred.; God Harvard, 1832, 1839.
    _25 the bride Harvard, Fred., 1839; thy bride 1832.

    ***


    SONG TO THE MEN OF ENGLAND.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    1.
    Men of England, wherefore plough
    For the lords who lay ye low?
    Wherefore weave with toil and care
    The rich robes your tyrants wear?

    2.
    Wherefore feed, and clothe, and save, _5
    From the cradle to the grave,
    Those ungrateful drones who would
    Drain your sweat—nay, drink your blood?

    3.
    Wherefore, Bees of England, forge
    Many a weapon, chain, and scourge, _10
    That these stingless drones may spoil
    The forced produce of your toil?

    4.
    Have ye leisure, comfort, calm,
    Shelter, food, love's gentle balm?
    Or what is it ye buy so dear _15
    With your pain and with your fear?

    5.
    The seed ye sow, another reaps;
    The wealth ye find, another keeps;
    The robes ye weave, another wears;
    The arms ye forge; another bears. _20

    6.
    Sow seed,—but let no tyrant reap;
    Find wealth,—let no impostor heap;
    Weave robes,—let not the idle wear;
    Forge arms,—in your defence to bear.

    7.
    Shrink to your cellars, holes, and cells; _25
    In halls ye deck another dwells.
    Why shake the chains ye wrought? Ye see
    The steel ye tempered glance on ye.

    8.
    With plough and spade, and hoe and loom,
    Trace your grave, and build your tomb, _30
    And weave your winding-sheet, till fair
    England be your sepulchre.

    ***


    SIMILES FOR TWO POLITICAL CHARACTERS OF 1819.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", August 25, 1832; reprinted by
    Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839. Our title is that of 1839, 2nd
    edition. The poem is found amongst the Harvard manuscripts, headed "To
    S—th and O—gh".]

    1.
    As from an ancestral oak
    Two empty ravens sound their clarion,
    Yell by yell, and croak by croak,
    When they scent the noonday smoke
    Of fresh human carrion:— _5

    2.
    As two gibbering night-birds flit
    From their bowers of deadly yew
    Through the night to frighten it,
    When the moon is in a fit,
    And the stars are none, or few:— _10

    3.
    As a shark and dog-fish wait
    Under an Atlantic isle,
    For the negro-ship, whose freight
    Is the theme of their debate,
    Wrinkling their red gills the while— _15

    4.
    Are ye, two vultures sick for battle,
    Two scorpions under one wet stone,
    Two bloodless wolves whose dry throats rattle,
    Two crows perched on the murrained cattle,
    Two vipers tangled into one. _20

    NOTE:
    _7 yew 1832; hue 1839.

    **


    FRAGMENT: TO THE PEOPLE OF ENGLAND.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    People of England, ye who toil and groan,
    Who reap the harvests which are not your own,
    Who weave the clothes which your oppressors wear,
    And for your own take the inclement air;
    Who build warm houses... _5
    And are like gods who give them all they have,
    And nurse them from the cradle to the grave...

    ...

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'WHAT MEN GAIN FAIRLY'.


    (Perhaps connected with that immediately preceding (Forman).—ED.)

    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    What men gain fairly—that they should possess,
    And children may inherit idleness,
    From him who earns it—This is understood;
    Private injustice may be general good.
    But he who gains by base and armed wrong, _5
    Or guilty fraud, or base compliances,
    May be despoiled; even as a stolen dress
    Is stripped from a convicted thief; and he
    Left in the nakedness of infamy.

    ***


    A NEW NATIONAL ANTHEM.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    1.
    God prosper, speed,and save,
    God raise from England's grave
    Her murdered Queen!
    Pave with swift victory
    The steps of Liberty, _5
    Whom Britons own to be
    Immortal Queen.

    2.
    See, she comes throned on high,
    On swift Eternity!
    God save the Queen! _10
    Millions on millions wait,
    Firm, rapid, and elate,
    On her majestic state!
    God save the Queen!

    3.
    She is Thine own pure soul _15
    Moulding the mighty whole,—
    God save the Queen!
    She is Thine own deep love
    Rained down from Heaven above,—
    Wherever she rest or move, _20
    God save our Queen!

    4.
    'Wilder her enemies
    In their own dark disguise,—
    God save our Queen!
    All earthly things that dare _25
    Her sacred name to bear,
    Strip them, as kings are, bare;
    God save the Queen!

    5.
    Be her eternal throne
    Built in our hearts alone— _30
    God save the Queen!
    Let the oppressor hold
    Canopied seats of gold;
    She sits enthroned of old
    O'er our hearts Queen. _35

    6.
    Lips touched by seraphim
    Breathe out the choral hymn
    'God save the Queen!'
    Sweet as if angels sang,
    Loud as that trumpet's clang _40
    Wakening the world's dead gang,—
    God save the Queen!

    ***


    SONNET: ENGLAND IN 1819.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    An old, mad, blind, despised, and dying king,—
    Princes, the dregs of their dull race, who flow
    Through public scorn,—mud from a muddy spring,—
    Rulers who neither see, nor feel, nor know,
    But leech-like to their fainting country cling, _5
    Till they drop, blind in blood, without a blow,—
    A people starved and stabbed in the untilled field,—
    An army, which liberticide and prey
    Makes as a two-edged sword to all who wield,—
    Golden and sanguine laws which tempt and slay; _10
    Religion Christless, Godless—a book sealed;
    A Senate,—Time's worst statute, unrepealed,—
    Are graves from which a glorious Phantom may
    Burst, to illumine our tempestuous day.

    ***


    AN ODE, WRITTEN OCTOBER, 1819,


    BEFORE THE SPANIARDS HAD RECOVERED THEIR LIBERTY.

    [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820.]

    Arise, arise, arise!
    There is blood on the earth that denies ye bread;
    Be your wounds like eyes
    To weep for the dead, the dead, the dead.
    What other grief were it just to pay? _5
    Your sons, your wives, your brethren, were they;
    Who said they were slain on the battle day?

    Awaken, awaken, awaken!
    The slave and the tyrant are twin-born foes;
    Be the cold chains shaken _10
    To the dust where your kindred repose, repose:
    Their bones in the grave will start and move,
    When they hear the voices of those they love,
    Most loud in the holy combat above.

    Wave, wave high the banner! _15
    When Freedom is riding to conquest by:
    Though the slaves that fan her
    Be Famine and Toil, giving sigh for sigh.
    And ye who attend her imperial car,
    Lift not your hands in the banded war, _20
    But in her defence whose children ye are.

    Glory, glory, glory,
    To those who have greatly suffered and done!
    Never name in story
    Was greater than that which ye shall have won. _25
    Conquerors have conquered their foes alone,
    Whose revenge, pride, and power they have overthrown
    Ride ye, more victorious, over your own.

    Bind, bind every brow
    With crownals of violet, ivy, and pine: _30
    Hide the blood-stains now
    With hues which sweet Nature has made divine:
    Green strength, azure hope, and eternity:
    But let not the pansy among them be;
    Ye were injured, and that means memory. _35

    ***


    CANCELLED STANZA.



    [Published in "The Times" (Rossetti).]

    Gather, O gather,
    Foeman and friend in love and peace!
    Waves sleep together
    When the blasts that called them to battle, cease.
    For fangless Power grown tame and mild _5
    Is at play with Freedom's fearless child—
    The dove and the serpent reconciled!

    ***


    ODE TO HEAVEN.



    [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820. Dated 'Florence, December,
    1819' in Harvard manuscript (Woodberry). A transcript exists amongst
    the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's
    "Examination", etc., page 39.]

    CHORUS OF SPIRITS:


    FIRST SPIRIT
    :
    Palace-roof of cloudless nights!
    Paradise of golden lights!
    Deep, immeasurable, vast,
    Which art now, and which wert then
    Of the Present and the Past, _5
    Of the eternal Where and When,
    Presence-chamber, temple, home,
    Ever-canopying dome,
    Of acts and ages yet to come!


    Glorious shapes have life in thee, _10
    Earth, and all earth's company;
    Living globes which ever throng
    Thy deep chasms and wildernesses;
    And green worlds that glide along;
    And swift stars with flashing tresses; _15
    And icy moons most cold and bright,
    And mighty suns beyond the night,
    Atoms of intensest light.


    Even thy name is as a god,
    Heaven! for thou art the abode _20
    Of that Power which is the glass
    Wherein man his nature sees.
    Generations as they pass
    Worship thee with bended knees.
    Their unremaining gods and they _25
    Like a river roll away:
    Thou remainest such—alway!—


    SECOND SPIRIT
    :
    Thou art but the mind's first chamber,
    Round which its young fancies clamber,
    Like weak insects in a cave, _30
    Lighted up by stalactites;
    But the portal of the grave,
    Where a world of new delights
    Will make thy best glories seem
    But a dim and noonday gleam _35
    From the shadow of a dream!


    THIRD SPIRIT
    :
    Peace! the abyss is wreathed with scorn
    At your presumption, atom-born!
    What is Heaven? and what are ye
    Who its brief expanse inherit? _40
    What are suns and spheres which flee
    With the instinct of that Spirit
    Of which ye are but a part?
    Drops which Nature's mighty heart
    Drives through thinnest veins! Depart! _45


    What is Heaven? a globe of dew,
    Filling in the morning new
    Some eyed flower whose young leaves waken
    On an unimagined world:
    Constellated suns unshaken, _50
    Orbits measureless, are furled
    In that frail and fading sphere,
    With ten millions gathered there,
    To tremble, gleam, and disappear.




    ***


    CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF THE ODE TO HEAVEN.



    [Published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination", etc., 1903.]

    The [living frame which sustains my soul]
    Is [sinking beneath the fierce control]
    Down through the lampless deep of song
    I am drawn and driven along—

    When a Nation screams aloud _5
    Like an eagle from the cloud
    When a...

    ...

    When the night...

    ...

    Watch the look askance and old—
    See neglect, and falsehood fold... _10

    ***


    ODE TO THE WEST WIND.



    (This poem was conceived and chiefly written in a wood that skirts the
    Arno, near Florence, and on a day when that tempestuous wind, whose
    temperature is at once mild and animating, was collecting the vapours
    which pour down the autumnal rains. They began, as I foresaw, at sunset
    with a violent tempest of hail and rain, attended by that magnificent
    thunder and lightning peculiar to the Cisalpine regions.

    The phenomenon alluded to at the conclusion of the third stanza is well
    known to naturalists. The vegetation at the bottom of the sea, of
    rivers, and of lakes, sympathizes with that of the land in the change
    of seasons, and is consequently influenced by the winds which announce
    it.—[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])

    [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820.]

    1.
    O wild West Wind, thou breath of Autumn's being,
    Thou, from whose unseen presence the leaves dead
    Are driven, like ghosts from an enchanter fleeing,

    Yellow, and black, and pale, and hectic red,
    Pestilence-stricken multitudes: O thou, _5
    Who chariotest to their dark wintry bed

    The winged seeds, where they lie cold and low,
    Each like a corpse within its grave, until
    Thine azure sister of the Spring shall blow

    Her clarion o'er the dreaming earth, and fill _10
    (Driving sweet buds like flocks to feed in air)
    With living hues and odours plain and hill:

    Wild Spirit, which art moving everywhere;
    Destroyer and preserver; hear, oh, hear!

    2.
    Thou on whose stream, mid the steep sky's commotion, _15
    Loose clouds like earth's decaying leaves are shed,
    Shook from the tangled boughs of Heaven and Ocean,

    Angels of rain and lightning: there are spread
    On the blue surface of thine aery surge,
    Like the bright hair uplifted from the head _20

    Of some fierce Maenad, even from the dim verge
    Of the horizon to the zenith's height,
    The locks of the approaching storm. Thou dirge

    Of the dying year, to which this closing night
    Will be the dome of a vast sepulchre, _25
    Vaulted with all thy congregated might

    Of vapours, from whose solid atmosphere
    Black rain, and fire, and hail will burst: oh, hear!

    3.
    Thou who didst waken from his summer dreams
    The blue Mediterranean, where he lay, _30
    Lulled by the coil of his crystalline streams,

    Beside a pumice isle in Baiae's bay,
    And saw in sleep old palaces and towers
    Quivering within the wave's intenser day,

    All overgrown with azure moss and flowers _35
    So sweet, the sense faints picturing them! Thou
    For whose path the Atlantic's level powers

    Cleave themselves into chasms, while far below
    The sea-blooms and the oozy woods which wear
    The sapless foliage of the ocean, know _40

    Thy voice, and suddenly grow gray with fear,
    And tremble and despoil themselves: oh, hear!

    4.
    If I were a dead leaf thou mightest bear;
    If I were a swift cloud to fly with thee;
    A wave to pant beneath thy power, and share _45

    The impulse of thy strength, only less free
    Than thou, O uncontrollable! If even
    I were as in my boyhood, and could be

    The comrade of thy wanderings over Heaven,
    As then, when to outstrip thy skiey speed _50
    Scarce seemed a vision; I would ne'er have striven

    As thus with thee in prayer in my sore need.
    Oh, lift me as a wave, a leaf, a cloud!
    I fall upon the thorns of life! I bleed!

    A heavy weight of hours has chained and bowed _55
    One too like thee: tameless, and swift, and proud.

    5.
    Make me thy lyre, even as the forest is:
    What if my leaves are falling like its own!
    The tumult of thy mighty harmonies

    Will take from both a deep, autumnal tone, _60
    Sweet though in sadness. Be thou, Spirit fierce,
    My spirit! Be thou me, impetuous one!

    Drive my dead thoughts over the universe
    Like withered leaves to quicken a new birth!
    And, by the incantation of this verse, _65

    Scatter, as from an unextinguished hearth
    Ashes and sparks, my words among mankind!
    Be through my lips to unawakened earth

    The trumpet of a prophecy! O, Wind,
    If Winter comes, can Spring be far behind? _70

    ***


    AN EXHORTATION.



    [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820. Dated 'Pisa, April, 1820'
    in Harvard manuscript (Woodberry), but assigned by Mrs. Shelley to
    1819.]

    Chameleons feed on light and air:
    Poets' food is love and fame:
    If in this wide world of care
    Poets could but find the same
    With as little toil as they, _5
    Would they ever change their hue
    As the light chameleons do,
    Suiting it to every ray
    Twenty times a day?

    Poets are on this cold earth, _10
    As chameleons might be,
    Hidden from their early birth
    in a cave beneath the sea;
    Where light is, chameleons change:
    Where love is not, poets do: _15
    Fame is love disguised: if few
    Find either, never think it strange
    That poets range.

    Yet dare not stain with wealth or power
    A poet's free and heavenly mind: _20
    If bright chameleons should devour
    Any food but beams and wind,
    They would grow as earthly soon
    As their brother lizards are.
    Children of a sunnier star, _25
    Spirits from beyond the moon,
    Oh, refuse the boon!

    ***


    THE INDIAN SERENADE.



    [Published, with the title, "Song written for an Indian Air", in "The
    Liberal", 2, 1822. Reprinted ("Lines to an Indian Air") by Mrs.
    Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. The poem is included in the Harvard
    manuscript book, and there is a description by Robert Browning of an
    autograph copy presenting some variations from the text of 1824. See
    Leigh Hunt's "Correspondence", 2, pages 264-8.]

    1.
    I arise from dreams of thee
    In the first sweet sleep of night,
    When the winds are breathing low,
    And the stars are shining bright:
    I arise from dreams of thee, _5
    And a spirit in my feet
    Hath led me—who knows how?
    To thy chamber window, Sweet!

    2.
    The wandering airs they faint
    On the dark, the silent stream— _10
    The Champak odours fail
    Like sweet thoughts in a dream;
    The nightingale's complaint,
    It dies upon her heart;—
    As I must on thine, _15
    Oh, beloved as thou art!

    3.
    Oh lift me from the grass!
    I die! I faint! I fail!
    Let thy love in kisses rain
    On my lips and eyelids pale. _20
    My cheek is cold and white, alas!
    My heart beats loud and fast;—
    Oh! press it to thine own again,
    Where it will break at last.

    NOTES:
    _3 Harvard manuscript omits When.
    _4 shining]burning Harvard manuscript, 1822.
    _7 Hath led Browning manuscript, 1822;
    Has borne Harvard manuscript; Has led 1824.
    _11 The Champak Harvard manuscript, 1822, 1824;
    And the Champak's Browning manuscript.
    _15 As I must on 1822, 1824;
    As I must die on Harvard manuscript, 1839, 1st edition.
    _16 Oh, beloved Browning manuscript, Harvard manuscript, 1839, 1st edition;
    Beloved 1822, 1824.
    _23 press it to thine own Browning manuscript;
    press it close to thine Harvard manuscript, 1824, 1839, 1st edition;
    press me to thine own, 1822.

    ***


    CANCELLED PASSAGE.



    [Published by W.M. Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works", 1870.]

    O pillow cold and wet with tears!
    Thou breathest sleep no more!

    ***


    TO SOPHIA [MISS STACEY].



    [Published by W.M. Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works", 1870.]

    1.
    Thou art fair, and few are fairer
    Of the Nymphs of earth or ocean;
    They are robes that fit the wearer—
    Those soft limbs of thine, whose motion
    Ever falls and shifts and glances _5
    As the life within them dances.

    2.
    Thy deep eyes, a double Planet,
    Gaze the wisest into madness
    With soft clear fire,—the winds that fan it
    Are those thoughts of tender gladness _10
    Which, like zephyrs on the billow,
    Make thy gentle soul their pillow.

    3.
    If, whatever face thou paintest
    In those eyes, grows pale with pleasure,
    If the fainting soul is faintest _15
    When it hears thy harp's wild measure,
    Wonder not that when thou speakest
    Of the weak my heart is weakest.

    4.
    As dew beneath the wind of morning,
    As the sea which whirlwinds waken, _20
    As the birds at thunder's warning,
    As aught mute yet deeply shaken,
    As one who feels an unseen spirit
    Is my heart when thine is near it.

    ***


    TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    The fragment included in the Harvard manuscript book.]

    (With what truth may I say—
    Roma! Roma! Roma!
    Non e piu come era prima!)

    1.
    My lost William, thou in whom
    Some bright spirit lived, and did
    That decaying robe consume
    Which its lustre faintly hid,—
    Here its ashes find a tomb, _5
    But beneath this pyramid
    Thou art not—if a thing divine
    Like thee can die, thy funeral shrine
    Is thy mother's grief and mine.

    2.
    Where art thou, my gentle child? _10
    Let me think thy spirit feeds,
    With its life intense and mild,
    The love of living leaves and weeds
    Among these tombs and ruins wild;—
    Let me think that through low seeds _15
    Of sweet flowers and sunny grass
    Into their hues and scents may pass
    A portion—

    NOTE:

    Motto _1 may I Harvard manuscript; I may 1824.
    _12 With Harvard manuscript, Mrs. Shelley, 1847; Within 1824, 1839.
    _16 Of sweet Harvard manuscript; Of the sweet 1824, 1839.

    ***


    TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    Thy little footsteps on the sands
    Of a remote and lonely shore;
    The twinkling of thine infant hands,
    Where now the worm will feed no more;
    Thy mingled look of love and glee _5
    When we returned to gaze on thee—

    ***


    TO MARY SHELLEY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    My dearest Mary, wherefore hast thou gone,
    And left me in this dreary world alone?
    Thy form is here indeed—a lovely one—
    But thou art fled, gone down the dreary road,
    That leads to Sorrow's most obscure abode; _5
    Thou sittest on the hearth of pale despair,
    Where
    For thine own sake I cannot follow thee.

    ***


    TO MARY SHELLEY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    The world is dreary,
    And I am weary
    Of wandering on without thee, Mary;
    A joy was erewhile
    In thy voice and thy smile, _5
    And 'tis gone, when I should be gone too, Mary.

    ***


    ON THE MEDUSA OF LEONARDO DA VINCI IN THE FLORENTINE GALLERY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    It lieth, gazing on the midnight sky,
    Upon the cloudy mountain-peak supine;
    Below, far lands are seen tremblingly;
    Its horror and its beauty are divine.
    Upon its lips and eyelids seems to lie _5
    Loveliness like a shadow, from which shine,
    Fiery and lurid, struggling underneath,
    The agonies of anguish and of death.

    2.
    Yet it is less the horror than the grace
    Which turns the gazer's spirit into stone, _10
    Whereon the lineaments of that dead face
    Are graven, till the characters be grown
    Into itself, and thought no more can trace;
    'Tis the melodious hue of beauty thrown
    Athwart the darkness and the glare of pain,
    Which humanize and harmonize the strain. _15

    3.
    And from its head as from one body grow,
    As ... grass out of a watery rock,
    Hairs which are vipers, and they curl and flow
    And their long tangles in each other lock, _20
    And with unending involutions show
    Their mailed radiance, as it were to mock
    The torture and the death within, and saw
    The solid air with many a ragged jaw.

    4.
    And, from a stone beside, a poisonous eft _25
    Peeps idly into those Gorgonian eyes;
    Whilst in the air a ghastly bat, bereft
    Of sense, has flitted with a mad surprise
    Out of the cave this hideous light had cleft,
    And he comes hastening like a moth that hies _30
    After a taper; and the midnight sky
    Flares, a light more dread than obscurity.

    5.
    'Tis the tempestuous loveliness of terror;
    For from the serpents gleams a brazen glare
    Kindled by that inextricable error, _35
    Which makes a thrilling vapour of the air
    Become a ... and ever-shifting mirror
    Of all the beauty and the terror there—
    A woman's countenance, with serpent-locks,
    Gazing in death on Heaven from those wet rocks. _40

    NOTES:
    _5 seems 1839; seem 1824.
    _6 shine]shrine 1824, 1839.
    _26 those 1824; these 1839.

    ***


    LOVE'S PHILOSOPHY.



    [Published by Leigh Hunt, "The Indicator", December 22, 1819. Reprinted
    by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Included in the Harvard
    manuscript book, where it is headed "An Anacreontic", and dated
    'January, 1820.' Written by Shelley in a copy of Hunt's "Literary
    Pocket-Book", 1819, and presented to Sophia Stacey, December 29, 1820.]

    1.
    The fountains mingle with the river
    And the rivers with the Ocean,
    The winds of Heaven mix for ever
    With a sweet emotion;
    Nothing in the world is single; _5
    All things by a law divine
    In one spirit meet and mingle.
    Why not I with thine?—

    2.
    See the mountains kiss high Heaven
    And the waves clasp one another; _10
    No sister-flower would be forgiven
    If it disdained its brother;
    And the sunlight clasps the earth
    And the moonbeams kiss the sea:
    What is all this sweet work worth _15
    If thou kiss not me?

    NOTES:
    _3 mix for ever 1819, Stacey manuscript;
    meet together, Harvard manuscript.
    _7 In one spirit meet and Stacey manuscript;
    In one another's being 1819, Harvard manuscript.
    _11 No sister 1824, Harvard and Stacey manuscripts; No leaf or 1819.
    _12 disdained its 1824, Harvard and Stacey manuscripts;
    disdained to kiss its 1819.
    _15 is all this sweet work Stacey manuscript;
    were these examples Harvard manuscript;
    are all these kissings 1819, 1824.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'FOLLOW TO THE DEEP WOOD'S WEEDS'.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Follow to the deep wood's weeds,
    Follow to the wild-briar dingle,
    Where we seek to intermingle,
    And the violet tells her tale
    To the odour-scented gale, _5
    For they two have enough to do
    Of such work as I and you.

    ***


    THE BIRTH OF PLEASURE.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    At the creation of the Earth
    Pleasure, that divinest birth,
    From the soil of Heaven did rise,
    Wrapped in sweet wild melodies—
    Like an exhalation wreathing _5
    To the sound of air low-breathing
    Through Aeolian pines, which make
    A shade and shelter to the lake
    Whence it rises soft and slow;
    Her life-breathing [limbs] did flow _10
    In the harmony divine
    Of an ever-lengthening line
    Which enwrapped her perfect form
    With a beauty clear and warm.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: LOVE THE UNIVERSE TO-DAY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    And who feels discord now or sorrow?
    Love is the universe to-day—
    These are the slaves of dim to-morrow,
    Darkening Life's labyrinthine way.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'A GENTLE STORY OF TWO LOVERS YOUNG'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    A gentle story of two lovers young,
    Who met in innocence and died in sorrow,
    And of one selfish heart, whose rancour clung
    Like curses on them; are ye slow to borrow
    The lore of truth from such a tale? _5
    Or in this world's deserted vale,
    Do ye not see a star of gladness
    Pierce the shadows of its sadness,—
    When ye are cold, that love is a light sent
    From Heaven, which none shall quench, to cheer the innocent? _10

    NOTE:
    _9 cold]told cj. A.C. Bradley.
    For the metre cp. Fragment: To a Friend Released from Prison.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: LOVE'S TENDER ATMOSPHERE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    There is a warm and gentle atmosphere
    About the form of one we love, and thus
    As in a tender mist our spirits are
    Wrapped in the ... of that which is to us
    The health of life's own life— _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: WEDDED SOULS.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    I am as a spirit who has dwelt
    Within his heart of hearts, and I have felt
    His feelings, and have thought his thoughts, and known
    The inmost converse of his soul, the tone
    Unheard but in the silence of his blood, _5
    When all the pulses in their multitude
    Image the trembling calm of summer seas.
    I have unlocked the golden melodies
    Of his deep soul, as with a master-key,
    And loosened them and bathed myself therein— _10
    Even as an eagle in a thunder-mist
    Clothing his wings with lightning.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'IS IT THAT IN SOME BRIGHTER SPHERE'.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Is it that in some brighter sphere
    We part from friends we meet with here?
    Or do we see the Future pass
    Over the Present's dusky glass?
    Or what is that that makes us seem _5
    To patch up fragments of a dream,
    Part of which comes true, and part
    Beats and trembles in the heart?

    ***


    FRAGMENT: SUFFICIENT UNTO THE DAY.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Is not to-day enough? Why do I peer
    Into the darkness of the day to come?
    Is not to-morrow even as yesterday?
    And will the day that follows change thy doom?
    Few flowers grow upon thy wintry way; _5
    And who waits for thee in that cheerless home
    Whence thou hast fled, whither thou must return
    Charged with the load that makes thee faint and mourn?

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'YE GENTLE VISITATIONS OF CALM THOUGHT'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    Ye gentle visitations of calm thought—
    Moods like the memories of happier earth,
    Which come arrayed in thoughts of little worth,
    Like stars in clouds by the weak winds enwrought,—
    But that the clouds depart and stars remain, _5
    While they remain, and ye, alas, depart!

    ***


    FRAGMENT: MUSIC AND SWEET POETRY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    How sweet it is to sit and read the tales
    Of mighty poets and to hear the while
    Sweet music, which when the attention fails
    Fills the dim pause—

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THE SEPULCHRE OF MEMORY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    And where is truth? On tombs? for such to thee
    Has been my heart—and thy dead memory
    Has lain from childhood, many a changeful year,
    Unchangingly preserved and buried there.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'WHEN A LOVER CLASPS HIS FAIREST'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    1.
    When a lover clasps his fairest,
    Then be our dread sport the rarest.
    Their caresses were like the chaff
    In the tempest, and be our laugh
    His despair—her epitaph! _5

    2.
    When a mother clasps her child,
    Watch till dusty Death has piled
    His cold ashes on the clay;
    She has loved it many a day—
    She remains,—it fades away. _10

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'WAKE THE SERPENT NOT'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    Wake the serpent not—lest he
    Should not know the way to go,—
    Let him crawl which yet lies sleeping
    Through the deep grass of the meadow!
    Not a bee shall hear him creeping, _5
    Not a may-fly shall awaken
    From its cradling blue-bell shaken,
    Not the starlight as he's sliding
    Through the grass with silent gliding.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: RAIN.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    The fitful alternations of the rain,
    When the chill wind, languid as with pain
    Of its own heavy moisture, here and there
    Drives through the gray and beamless atmosphere.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: A TALE UNTOLD.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    One sung of thee who left the tale untold,
    Like the false dawns which perish in the bursting;
    Like empty cups of wrought and daedal gold,
    Which mock the lips with air, when they are thirsting.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: TO ITALY.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    As the sunrise to the night,
    As the north wind to the clouds,
    As the earthquake's fiery flight,
    Ruining mountain solitudes,
    Everlasting Italy, _5
    Be those hopes and fears on thee.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: WINE OF THE FAIRIES.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    I am drunk with the honey wine
    Of the moon-unfolded eglantine,
    Which fairies catch in hyacinth bowls.
    The bats, the dormice, and the moles
    Sleep in the walls or under the sward _5
    Of the desolate castle yard;
    And when 'tis spilt on the summer earth
    Or its fumes arise among the dew,
    Their jocund dreams are full of mirth,
    They gibber their joy in sleep; for few _10
    Of the fairies bear those bowls so new!

    ***


    FRAGMENT: A ROMAN'S CHAMBER.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    1.
    In the cave which wild weeds cover
    Wait for thine aethereal lover;
    For the pallid moon is waning,
    O'er the spiral cypress hanging
    And the moon no cloud is staining. _5

    2.
    It was once a Roman's chamber,
    Where he kept his darkest revels,
    And the wild weeds twine and clamber;
    It was then a chasm for devils.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: ROME AND NATURE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    Rome has fallen, ye see it lying
    Heaped in undistinguished ruin:
    Nature is alone undying.

    ***


    VARIATION OF THE SONG OF THE MOON.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    ("PROMETHEUS UNBOUND", ACT 4.)

    As a violet's gentle eye
    Gazes on the azure sky
    Until its hue grows like what it beholds;
    As a gray and empty mist
    Lies like solid amethyst _5
    Over the western mountain it enfolds,
    When the sunset sleeps
    Upon its snow;
    As a strain of sweetest sound
    Wraps itself the wind around _10
    Until the voiceless wind be music too;
    As aught dark, vain, and dull,
    Basking in what is beautiful,
    Is full of light and love—

    ***


    CANCELLED STANZA OF THE MASK OF ANARCHY.



    [Published by H. Buxton Forman, "The Mask of Anarchy" ("Facsimile of
    Shelley's manuscript"), 1887.]

    (FOR WHICH STANZAS 68, 69 HAVE BEEN SUBSTITUTED.)

    From the cities where from caves,
    Like the dead from putrid graves,
    Troops of starvelings gliding come,
    Living Tenants of a tomb.

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1819, BY MRS. SHELLEY.

    Shelley loved the People; and respected them as often more virtuous, as always more suffering, and therefore more deserving of sympathy, than the great. He believed that a clash between the two classes of society was inevitable, and he eagerly ranged himself on the people's side. He had an idea of publishing a series of poems adapted expressly to commemorate their circumstances and wrongs. He wrote a few; but, in those days of prosecution for libel, they could not be printed. They are not among the best of his productions, a writer being always shackled when he endeavours to write down to the comprehension of those who could not understand or feel a highly imaginative style; but they show his earnestness, and with what heart-felt compassion he went home to the direct point of injury—that oppression is detestable as being the parent of starvation, nakedness, and ignorance. Besides these outpourings of compassion and indignation, he had meant to adorn the cause he loved with loftier poetry of glory and triumph: such is the scope of the "Ode to the Assertors of Liberty". He sketched also a new version of our national anthem, as addressed to Liberty.

    ***


    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1820.




    THE SENSITIVE PLANT.



    [Composed at Pisa, early in 1820 (dated 'March, 1820,' in Harvard
    manuscript), and published, with "Prometheus Unbound", the same year:
    included in the Harvard College manuscript book. Reprinted in the
    "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions.]

    PART 1.



    A Sensitive Plant in a garden grew,
    And the young winds fed it with silver dew,
    And it opened its fan-like leaves to the light.
    And closed them beneath the kisses of Night.

    And the Spring arose on the garden fair, _5
    Like the Spirit of Love felt everywhere;
    And each flower and herb on Earth's dark breast
    Rose from the dreams of its wintry rest.

    But none ever trembled and panted with bliss
    In the garden, the field, or the wilderness, _10
    Like a doe in the noontide with love's sweet want,
    As the companionless Sensitive Plant.

    The snowdrop, and then the violet,
    Arose from the ground with warm rain wet,
    And their breath was mixed with fresh odour, sent _15
    From the turf, like the voice and the instrument.

    Then the pied wind-flowers and the tulip tall,
    And narcissi, the fairest among them all,
    Who gaze on their eyes in the stream's recess,
    Till they die of their own dear loveliness; _20

    And the Naiad-like lily of the vale,
    Whom youth makes so fair and passion so pale
    That the light of its tremulous bells is seen
    Through their pavilions of tender green;

    And the hyacinth purple, and white, and blue, _25
    Which flung from its bells a sweet peal anew
    Of music so delicate, soft, and intense,
    It was felt like an odour within the sense;

    And the rose like a nymph to the bath addressed,
    Which unveiled the depth of her glowing breast, _30
    Till, fold after fold, to the fainting air
    The soul of her beauty and love lay bare:

    And the wand-like lily, which lifted up,
    As a Maenad, its moonlight-coloured cup,
    Till the fiery star, which is its eye,
    Gazed through clear dew on the tender sky; _35

    And the jessamine faint, and the sweet tuberose,
    The sweetest flower for scent that blows;
    And all rare blossoms from every clime
    Grew in that garden in perfect prime. _40

    And on the stream whose inconstant bosom
    Was pranked, under boughs of embowering blossom,
    With golden and green light, slanting through
    Their heaven of many a tangled hue,

    Broad water-lilies lay tremulously, _45
    And starry river-buds glimmered by,
    And around them the soft stream did glide and dance
    With a motion of sweet sound and radiance.

    And the sinuous paths of lawn and of moss,
    Which led through the garden along and across, _50
    Some open at once to the sun and the breeze,
    Some lost among bowers of blossoming trees,

    Were all paved with daisies and delicate bells
    As fair as the fabulous asphodels,
    And flow'rets which, drooping as day drooped too, _55
    Fell into pavilions, white, purple, and blue,
    To roof the glow-worm from the evening dew.

    And from this undefiled Paradise
    The flowers (as an infant's awakening eyes
    Smile on its mother, whose singing sweet _60
    Can first lull, and at last must awaken it),

    When Heaven's blithe winds had unfolded them,
    As mine-lamps enkindle a hidden gem,
    Shone smiling to Heaven, and every one _65
    Shared joy in the light of the gentle sun;

    For each one was interpenetrated
    With the light and the odour its neighbour shed,
    Like young lovers whom youth and love make dear
    Wrapped and filled by their mutual atmosphere.

    But the Sensitive Plant which could give small fruit _70
    Of the love which it felt from the leaf to the root,
    Received more than all, it loved more than ever,
    Where none wanted but it, could belong to the giver,—

    For the Sensitive Plant has no bright flower;
    Radiance and odour are not its dower; _75
    It loves, even like Love, its deep heart is full,
    It desires what it has not, the Beautiful!

    The light winds which from unsustaining wings
    Shed the music of many murmurings;
    The beams which dart from many a star _80
    Of the flowers whose hues they bear afar;

    The plumed insects swift and free,
    Like golden boats on a sunny sea,
    Laden with light and odour, which pass
    Over the gleam of the living grass; _85

    The unseen clouds of the dew, which lie
    Like fire in the flowers till the sun rides high,
    Then wander like spirits among the spheres,
    Each cloud faint with the fragrance it bears;

    The quivering vapours of dim noontide, _90
    Which like a sea o'er the warm earth glide,
    In which every sound, and odour, and beam,
    Move, as reeds in a single stream;

    Each and all like ministering angels were
    For the Sensitive Plant sweet joy to bear, _95
    Whilst the lagging hours of the day went by
    Like windless clouds o'er a tender sky.

    And when evening descended from Heaven above,
    And the Earth was all rest, and the air was all love,
    And delight, though less bright, was far more deep, _100
    And the day's veil fell from the world of sleep,

    And the beasts, and the birds, and the insects were drowned
    In an ocean of dreams without a sound;
    Whose waves never mark, though they ever impress
    The light sand which paves it, consciousness; _105

    (Only overhead the sweet nightingale
    Ever sang more sweet as the day might fail,
    And snatches of its Elysian chant
    Were mixed with the dreams of the Sensitive Plant);—

    The Sensitive Plant was the earliest _110
    Upgathered into the bosom of rest;
    A sweet child weary of its delight,
    The feeblest and yet the favourite,
    Cradled within the embrace of Night.

    NOTES:
    _6 Like the Spirit of Love felt 1820;
    And the Spirit of Love felt 1839, 1st edition;
    And the Spirit of Love fell 1839, 2nd edition.
    _49 and of moss]and moss Harvard manuscript.
    _82 The]And the Harvard manuscript.


    PART 2.



    There was a Power in this sweet place,
    An Eve in this Eden; a ruling Grace
    Which to the flowers, did they waken or dream,
    Was as God is to the starry scheme.

    A Lady, the wonder of her kind, _5
    Whose form was upborne by a lovely mind
    Which, dilating, had moulded her mien and motion
    Like a sea-flower unfolded beneath the ocean,

    Tended the garden from morn to even:
    And the meteors of that sublunar Heaven, _10
    Like the lamps of the air when Night walks forth,
    Laughed round her footsteps up from the Earth!

    She had no companion of mortal race,
    But her tremulous breath and her flushing face
    Told, whilst the morn kissed the sleep from her eyes, _15
    That her dreams were less slumber than Paradise:

    As if some bright Spirit for her sweet sake
    Had deserted Heaven while the stars were awake,
    As if yet around her he lingering were,
    Though the veil of daylight concealed him from her. _20

    Her step seemed to pity the grass it pressed;
    You might hear by the heaving of her breast,
    That the coming and going of the wind
    Brought pleasure there and left passion behind.

    And wherever her aery footstep trod, _25
    Her trailing hair from the grassy sod
    Erased its light vestige, with shadowy sweep,
    Like a sunny storm o'er the dark green deep.

    I doubt not the flowers of that garden sweet
    Rejoiced in the sound of her gentle feet; _30
    I doubt not they felt the spirit that came
    From her glowing fingers through all their frame.

    She sprinkled bright water from the stream
    On those that were faint with the sunny beam;
    And out of the cups of the heavy flowers _35
    She emptied the rain of the thunder-showers.

    She lifted their heads with her tender hands,
    And sustained them with rods and osier-bands;
    If the flowers had been her own infants, she
    Could never have nursed them more tenderly. _40

    And all killing insects and gnawing worms,
    And things of obscene and unlovely forms,
    She bore, in a basket of Indian woof,
    Into the rough woods far aloof,—

    In a basket, of grasses and wild-flowers full, _45
    The freshest her gentle hands could pull
    For the poor banished insects, whose intent,
    Although they did ill, was innocent.

    But the bee and the beamlike ephemeris
    Whose path is the lightning's, and soft moths that kiss _50
    The sweet lips of the flowers, and harm not, did she
    Make her attendant angels be.

    And many an antenatal tomb,
    Where butterflies dream of the life to come,
    She left clinging round the smooth and dark _55
    Edge of the odorous cedar bark.

    This fairest creature from earliest Spring
    Thus moved through the garden ministering
    Mi the sweet season of Summertide,
    And ere the first leaf looked brown—she died! _60

    NOTES:
    _15 morn Harvard manuscript, 1839; moon 1820.
    _23 and going 1820; and the going Harvard manuscript, 1839.
    _59 All 1820, 1839; Through all Harvard manuscript.

    PART 3.

    Three days the flowers of the garden fair,
    Like stars when the moon is awakened, were,
    Or the waves of Baiae, ere luminous
    She floats up through the smoke of Vesuvius.

    And on the fourth, the Sensitive Plant _5
    Felt the sound of the funeral chant,
    And the steps of the bearers, heavy and slow,
    And the sobs of the mourners, deep and low;

    The weary sound and the heavy breath,
    And the silent motions of passing death, _10
    And the smell, cold, oppressive, and dank,
    Sent through the pores of the coffin-plank;

    The dark grass, and the flowers among the grass,
    Were bright with tears as the crowd did pass;
    From their sighs the wind caught a mournful tone, _15
    And sate in the pines, and gave groan for groan.

    The garden, once fair, became cold and foul,
    Like the corpse of her who had been its soul,
    Which at first was lovely as if in sleep,
    Then slowly changed, till it grew a heap _20
    To make men tremble who never weep.

    Swift Summer into the Autumn flowed,
    And frost in the mist of the morning rode,
    Though the noonday sun looked clear and bright,
    Mocking the spoil of the secret night. _25

    The rose-leaves, like flakes of crimson snow,
    Paved the turf and the moss below.
    The lilies were drooping, and white, and wan,
    Like the head and the skin of a dying man.

    And Indian plants, of scent and hue _30
    The sweetest that ever were fed on dew,
    Leaf by leaf, day after day,
    Were massed into the common clay.

    And the leaves, brown, yellow, and gray, and red,
    And white with the whiteness of what is dead, _35
    Like troops of ghosts on the dry wind passed;
    Their whistling noise made the birds aghast.

    And the gusty winds waked the winged seeds,
    Out of their birthplace of ugly weeds,
    Till they clung round many a sweet flower's stem, _40
    Which rotted into the earth with them.

    The water-blooms under the rivulet
    Fell from the stalks on which they were set;
    And the eddies drove them here and there,
    As the winds did those of the upper air. _45

    Then the rain came down, and the broken stalks
    Were bent and tangled across the walks;
    And the leafless network of parasite bowers
    Massed into ruin; and all sweet flowers.

    Between the time of the wind and the snow _50
    All loathliest weeds began to grow,
    Whose coarse leaves were splashed with many a speck,
    Like the water-snake's belly and the toad's back.

    And thistles, and nettles, and darnels rank,
    And the dock, and henbane, and hemlock dank, _55
    Stretched out its long and hollow shank,
    And stifled the air till the dead wind stank.

    And plants, at whose names the verse feels loath,
    Filled the place with a monstrous undergrowth,
    Prickly, and pulpous, and blistering, and blue, _60
    Livid, and starred with a lurid dew.

    And agarics, and fungi, with mildew and mould
    Started like mist from the wet ground cold;
    Pale, fleshy, as if the decaying dead
    With a spirit of growth had been animated! _65

    Spawn, weeds, and filth, a leprous scum,
    Made the running rivulet thick and dumb,
    And at its outlet flags huge as stakes
    Dammed it up with roots knotted like water-snakes.

    And hour by hour, when the air was still, _70
    The vapours arose which have strength to kill;
    At morn they were seen, at noon they were felt,
    At night they were darkness no star could melt.

    And unctuous meteors from spray to spray
    Crept and flitted in broad noonday _75
    Unseen; every branch on which they alit
    By a venomous blight was burned and bit.

    The Sensitive Plant, like one forbid,
    Wept, and the tears within each lid
    Of its folded leaves, which together grew, _80
    Were changed to a blight of frozen glue.

    For the leaves soon fell, and the branches soon
    By the heavy axe of the blast were hewn;
    The sap shrank to the root through every pore
    As blood to a heart that will beat no more. _85

    For Winter came: the wind was his whip:
    One choppy finger was on his lip:
    He had torn the cataracts from the hills
    And they clanked at his girdle like manacles;

    His breath was a chain which without a sound _90
    The earth, and the air, and the water bound;
    He came, fiercely driven, in his chariot-throne
    By the tenfold blasts of the Arctic zone.

    Then the weeds which were forms of living death
    Fled from the frost to the earth beneath. _95
    Their decay and sudden flight from frost
    Was but like the vanishing of a ghost!

    And under the roots of the Sensitive Plant
    The moles and the dormice died for want:
    The birds dropped stiff from the frozen air _100
    And were caught in the branches naked and bare.

    First there came down a thawing rain
    And its dull drops froze on the boughs again;
    Then there steamed up a freezing dew
    Which to the drops of the thaw-rain grew; _105

    And a northern whirlwind, wandering about
    Like a wolf that had smelt a dead child out,
    Shook the boughs thus laden, and heavy, and stiff,
    And snapped them off with his rigid griff.

    When Winter had gone and Spring came back _110
    The Sensitive Plant was a leafless wreck;
    But the mandrakes, and toadstools, and docks, and darnels,
    Rose like the dead from their ruined charnels.

    CONCLUSION.

    Whether the Sensitive Plant, or that
    Which within its boughs like a Spirit sat, _115
    Ere its outward form had known decay,
    Now felt this change, I cannot say.

    Whether that Lady's gentle mind,
    No longer with the form combined
    Which scattered love, as stars do light, _120
    Found sadness, where it left delight,

    I dare not guess; but in this life
    Of error, ignorance, and strife,
    Where nothing is, but all things seem,
    And we the shadows of the dream, _125

    It is a modest creed, and yet
    Pleasant if one considers it,
    To own that death itself must be,
    Like all the rest, a mockery.

    That garden sweet, that lady fair, _130
    And all sweet shapes and odours there,
    In truth have never passed away:
    'Tis we, 'tis ours, are changed; not they.

    For love, and beauty, and delight,
    There is no death nor change: their might _135
    Exceeds our organs, which endure
    No light, being themselves obscure.

    NOTES:
    _19 lovely Harvard manuscript, 1839; lively 1820.
    _23 of the morning 1820, 1839; of morning Harvard manuscript.
    _26 snow Harvard manuscript, 1839; now 1820.
    _28 And lilies were drooping, white and wan Harvard manuscript.
    _32 Leaf by leaf, day after day Harvard manuscript;
    Leaf after leaf, day after day 1820;
    Leaf after leaf, day by day 1839.
    _63 mist]mists Harvard manuscript.
    _96 and sudden flight]and their sudden flight the Harvard manuscript.
    _98 And under]Under Harvard manuscript.
    _114 Whether]And if Harvard manuscript.
    _118 Whether]Or if Harvard manuscript.

    ***


    CANCELLED PASSAGE.



    [This stanza followed 3, 62-65 in the editio princeps, 1820, but was
    omitted by Mrs. Shelley from all editions from 1839 onwards. It is
    cancelled in the Harvard manuscript.]

    Their moss rotted off them, flake by flake,
    Till the thick stalk stuck like a murderer's stake,
    Where rags of loose flesh yet tremble on high,
    Infecting the winds that wander by.

    ***


    A VISION OF THE SEA.



    [Composed at Pisa early in 1820, and published with "Prometheus
    Unbound" in the same year. A transcript in Mrs. Shelley's handwriting
    is included in the Harvard manuscript book, where it is dated 'April,
    1820.']

    'Tis the terror of tempest. The rags of the sail
    Are flickering in ribbons within the fierce gale:
    From the stark night of vapours the dim rain is driven,
    And when lightning is loosed, like a deluge from Heaven,
    She sees the black trunks of the waterspouts spin _5
    And bend, as if Heaven was ruining in,
    Which they seemed to sustain with their terrible mass
    As if ocean had sunk from beneath them: they pass
    To their graves in the deep with an earthquake of sound,
    And the waves and the thunders, made silent around, _10
    Leave the wind to its echo. The vessel, now tossed
    Through the low-trailing rack of the tempest, is lost
    In the skirts of the thunder-cloud: now down the sweep
    Of the wind-cloven wave to the chasm of the deep
    It sinks, and the walls of the watery vale _15
    Whose depths of dread calm are unmoved by the gale,
    Dim mirrors of ruin, hang gleaming about;
    While the surf, like a chaos of stars, like a rout
    Of death-flames, like whirlpools of fire-flowing iron,
    With splendour and terror the black ship environ, _20
    Or like sulphur-flakes hurled from a mine of pale fire
    In fountains spout o'er it. In many a spire
    The pyramid-billows with white points of brine
    In the cope of the lightning inconstantly shine,
    As piercing the sky from the floor of the sea. _25
    The great ship seems splitting! it cracks as a tree,
    While an earthquake is splintering its root, ere the blast
    Of the whirlwind that stripped it of branches has passed.
    The intense thunder-balls which are raining from Heaven
    Have shattered its mast, and it stands black and riven. _30
    The chinks suck destruction. The heavy dead hulk
    On the living sea rolls an inanimate bulk,
    Like a corpse on the clay which is hungering to fold
    Its corruption around it. Meanwhile, from the hold,
    One deck is burst up by the waters below, _35
    And it splits like the ice when the thaw-breezes blow
    O'er the lakes of the desert! Who sit on the other?
    Is that all the crew that lie burying each other,
    Like the dead in a breach, round the foremast? Are those
    Twin tigers, who burst, when the waters arose, _40
    In the agony of terror, their chains in the hold;
    (What now makes them tame, is what then made them bold;)
    Who crouch, side by side, and have driven, like a crank,
    The deep grip of their claws through the vibrating plank
    Are these all? Nine weeks the tall vessel had lain _45
    On the windless expanse of the watery plain,
    Where the death-darting sun cast no shadow at noon,
    And there seemed to be fire in the beams of the moon,
    Till a lead-coloured fog gathered up from the deep,
    Whose breath was quick pestilence; then, the cold sleep _50
    Crept, like blight through the ears of a thick field of corn,
    O'er the populous vessel. And even and morn,
    With their hammocks for coffins the seamen aghast
    Like dead men the dead limbs of their comrades cast
    Down the deep, which closed on them above and around, _55
    And the sharks and the dogfish their grave-clothes unbound,
    And were glutted like Jews with this manna rained down
    From God on their wilderness. One after one
    The mariners died; on the eve of this day,
    When the tempest was gathering in cloudy array, _60
    But seven remained. Six the thunder has smitten,
    And they lie black as mummies on which Time has written
    His scorn of the embalmer; the seventh, from the deck
    An oak-splinter pierced through his breast and his back,
    And hung out to the tempest, a wreck on the wreck. _65
    No more? At the helm sits a woman more fair
    Than Heaven, when, unbinding its star-braided hair,
    It sinks with the sun on the earth and the sea.
    She clasps a bright child on her upgathered knee;
    It laughs at the lightning, it mocks the mixed thunder _70
    Of the air and the sea, with desire and with wonder
    It is beckoning the tigers to rise and come near,
    It would play with those eyes where the radiance of fear
    Is outshining the meteors; its bosom beats high,
    The heart-fire of pleasure has kindled its eye, _75
    While its mother's is lustreless. 'Smile not, my child,
    But sleep deeply and sweetly, and so be beguiled
    Of the pang that awaits us, whatever that be,
    So dreadful since thou must divide it with me!
    Dream, sleep! This pale bosom, thy cradle and bed, _80
    Will it rock thee not, infant? 'Tis beating with dread!
    Alas! what is life, what is death, what are we,
    That when the ship sinks we no longer may be?
    What! to see thee no more, and to feel thee no more?
    To be after life what we have been before? _85
    Not to touch those sweet hands? Not to look on those eyes,
    Those lips, and that hair,—all the smiling disguise
    Thou yet wearest, sweet Spirit, which I, day by day,
    Have so long called my child, but which now fades away
    Like a rainbow, and I the fallen shower?'—Lo! the ship _90
    Is settling, it topples, the leeward ports dip;
    The tigers leap up when they feel the slow brine
    Crawling inch by inch on them; hair, ears, limbs, and eyne,
    Stand rigid with horror; a loud, long, hoarse cry
    Bursts at once from their vitals tremendously, _95
    And 'tis borne down the mountainous vale of the wave,
    Rebounding, like thunder, from crag to cave,
    Mixed with the clash of the lashing rain,
    Hurried on by the might of the hurricane:
    The hurricane came from the west, and passed on _100
    By the path of the gate of the eastern sun,
    Transversely dividing the stream of the storm;
    As an arrowy serpent, pursuing the form
    Of an elephant, bursts through the brakes of the waste.
    Black as a cormorant the screaming blast, _105
    Between Ocean and Heaven, like an ocean, passed,
    Till it came to the clouds on the verge of the world
    Which, based on the sea and to Heaven upcurled,
    Like columns and walls did surround and sustain
    The dome of the tempest; it rent them in twain, _110
    As a flood rends its barriers of mountainous crag:
    And the dense clouds in many a ruin and rag,
    Like the stones of a temple ere earthquake has passed,
    Like the dust of its fall. on the whirlwind are cast;
    They are scattered like foam on the torrent; and where _115
    The wind has burst out through the chasm, from the air
    Of clear morning the beams of the sunrise flow in,
    Unimpeded, keen, golden, and crystalline,
    Banded armies of light and of air; at one gate
    They encounter, but interpenetrate. _120
    And that breach in the tempest is widening away,
    And the caverns of cloud are torn up by the day,
    And the fierce winds are sinking with weary wings,
    Lulled by the motion and murmurings
    And the long glassy heave of the rocking sea, _125
    And overhead glorious, but dreadful to see,
    The wrecks of the tempest, like vapours of gold,
    Are consuming in sunrise. The heaped waves behold
    The deep calm of blue Heaven dilating above,
    And, like passions made still by the presence of Love, _130
    Beneath the clear surface reflecting it slide
    Tremulous with soft influence; extending its tide
    From the Andes to Atlas, round mountain and isle,
    Round sea-birds and wrecks, paved with Heaven's azure smile,
    The wide world of waters is vibrating. Where _135
    Is the ship? On the verge of the wave where it lay
    One tiger is mingled in ghastly affray
    With a sea-snake. The foam and the smoke of the battle
    Stain the clear air with sunbows; the jar, and the rattle
    Of solid bones crushed by the infinite stress _140
    Of the snake's adamantine voluminousness;
    And the hum of the hot blood that spouts and rains
    Where the gripe of the tiger has wounded the veins
    Swollen with rage, strength, and effort; the whirl and the splash
    As of some hideous engine whose brazen teeth smash _145
    The thin winds and soft waves into thunder; the screams
    And hissings crawl fast o'er the smooth ocean-streams,
    Each sound like a centipede. Near this commotion,
    A blue shark is hanging within the blue ocean,
    The fin-winged tomb of the victor. The other _150
    Is winning his way from the fate of his brother
    To his own with the speed of despair. Lo! a boat
    Advances; twelve rowers with the impulse of thought
    Urge on the keen keel,—the brine foams. At the stern
    Three marksmen stand levelling. Hot bullets burn _155
    In the breast of the tiger, which yet bears him on
    To his refuge and ruin. One fragment alone,—
    'Tis dwindling and sinking, 'tis now almost gone,—
    Of the wreck of the vessel peers out of the sea.
    With her left hand she grasps it impetuously. _160
    With her right she sustains her fair infant. Death, Fear,
    Love, Beauty, are mixed in the atmosphere,
    Which trembles and burns with the fervour of dread
    Around her wild eyes, her bright hand, and her head,
    Like a meteor of light o'er the waters! her child _165
    Is yet smiling, and playing, and murmuring; so smiled
    The false deep ere the storm. Like a sister and brother
    The child and the ocean still smile on each other,
    Whilst—

    NOTES:
    _6 ruining Harvard manuscript, 1839; raining 1820.
    _8 sunk Harvard manuscript, 1839; sank 1820.
    _35 by Harvard manuscript; from 1820, 1839.
    _61 has 1820; had 1839.
    _87 all the Harvard manuscript; all that 1820, 1839.
    _116 through Harvard manuscript; from 1820, 1839.
    _121 away]alway cj. A.C. Bradley.
    _122 cloud Harvard manuscript, 1839; clouds 1820.
    _160 impetuously 1820, 1839; convulsively Harvard manuscript.

    ***


    THE CLOUD.



    [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820.]

    I bring fresh showers for the thirsting flowers,
    From the seas and the streams;
    I bear light shade for the leaves when laid
    In their noonday dreams.
    From my wings are shaken the dews that waken _5
    The sweet buds every one,
    When rocked to rest on their mother's breast,
    As she dances about the sun.
    I wield the flail of the lashing hail,
    And whiten the green plains under, _10
    And then again I dissolve it in rain,
    And laugh as I pass in thunder.

    I sift the snow on the mountains below,
    And their great pines groan aghast;
    And all the night 'tis my pillow white, _15
    While I sleep in the arms of the blast.
    Sublime on the towers of my skiey bowers,
    Lightning my pilot sits;
    In a cavern under is fettered the thunder,
    It struggles and howls at fits; _20
    Over earth and ocean, with gentle motion,
    This pilot is guiding me,
    Lured by the love of the genii that move
    In the depths of the purple sea;
    Over the rills, and the crags, and the hills. _25
    Over the lakes and the plains,
    Wherever he dream, under mountain or stream,
    The Spirit he loves remains;
    And I all the while bask in Heaven's blue smile,
    Whilst he is dissolving in rains. _30

    The sanguine Sunrise, with his meteor eyes,
    And his burning plumes outspread,
    Leaps on the back of my sailing rack,
    When the morning star shines dead;
    As on the jag of a mountain crag, _35
    Which an earthquake rocks and swings,
    An eagle alit one moment may sit
    In the light of its golden wings.
    And when Sunset may breathe, from the lit sea beneath,
    Its ardours of rest and of love, _40
    And the crimson pall of eve may fall
    From the depth of Heaven above.
    With wings folded I rest, on mine aery nest,
    As still as a brooding dove.

    That orbed maiden with white fire laden, _45
    Whom mortals call the Moon,
    Glides glimmering o'er my fleece-like floor,
    By the midnight breezes strewn;
    And wherever the beat of her unseen feet,
    Which only the angels hear, _50
    May have broken the woof of my tent's thin roof.
    The stars peep behind her and peer;
    And I laugh to see them whirl and flee,
    Like a swarm of golden bees.
    When I widen the rent in my wind-built tent, _55
    Till the calm rivers, lakes, and seas,
    Like strips of the sky fallen through me on high,
    Are each paved with the moon and these.

    I bind the Sun's throne with a burning zone,
    And the Moon's with a girdle of pearl; _60
    The volcanoes are dim, and the stars reel and swim,
    When the whirlwinds my banner unfurl.
    From cape to cape, with a bridge-like shape,
    Over a torrent sea,
    Sunbeam-proof, I hand like a roof,— _65
    The mountains its columns be.
    The triumphal arch through which I march
    With hurricane, fire, and snow,
    When the Powers of the air are chained to my chair,
    Is the million-coloured bow; _70
    The sphere-fire above its soft colours wove,
    While the moist Earth was laughing below.

    I am the daughter of Earth and Water,
    And the nursling of the Sky;
    I pass through the pores of the ocean and shores; _75
    I change, but I cannot die.
    For after the rain when with never a stain
    The pavilion of Heaven is bare,
    And the winds and sunbeams with their convex gleams
    Build up the blue dome of air, _80
    I silently laugh at my own cenotaph,
    And out of the caverns of rain,
    Like a child from the womb, like a ghost from the tomb,
    I arise and unbuild it again.

    NOTES:
    _3 shade 1820; shades 1839.
    _6 buds 1839; birds 1820.
    _59 with a 1820; with the 1830.

    ***


    TO A SKYLARK.



    [Composed at Leghorn, 1820, and published with "Prometheus Unbound" in
    the same year. There is a transcript in the Harvard manuscript.]

    Hail to thee, blithe Spirit!
    Bird thou never wert,
    That from Heaven, or near it,
    Pourest thy full heart
    In profuse strains of unpremeditated art. _5

    Higher still and higher
    From the earth thou springest
    Like a cloud of fire;
    The blue deep thou wingest,
    And singing still dost soar, and soaring ever singest. _10

    In the golden lightning
    Of the sunken sun,
    O'er which clouds are bright'ning.
    Thou dost float and run;
    Like an unbodied joy whose race is just begun. _15

    The pale purple even
    Melts around thy flight;
    Like a star of Heaven,
    In the broad daylight
    Thou art unseen, but yet I hear thy shrill delight, _20

    Keen as are the arrows
    Of that silver sphere,
    Whose intense lamp narrows
    In the white dawn clear
    Until we hardly see—we feel that it is there. _25

    All the earth and air
    With thy voice is loud,
    As, when night is bare,
    From one lonely cloud
    The moon rains out her beams, and Heaven is overflowed. _30

    What thou art we know not;
    What is most like thee?
    From rainbow clouds there flow not
    Drops so bright to see
    As from thy presence showers a rain of melody. _35

    Like a Poet hidden
    In the light of thought,
    Singing hymns unbidden,
    Till the world is wrought
    To sympathy with hopes and fears it heeded not: _40

    Like a high-born maiden
    In a palace-tower,
    Soothing her love-laden
    Soul in secret hour
    With music sweet as love, which overflows her bower: _45

    Like a glow-worm golden
    In a dell of dew,
    Scattering unbeholden
    Its aereal hue
    Among the flowers and grass, which screen it from the view! _50

    Like a rose embowered
    In its own green leaves,
    By warm winds deflowered,
    Till the scent it gives
    Makes faint with too much sweet those heavy-winged thieves: _55

    Sound of vernal showers
    On the twinkling grass,
    Rain-awakened flowers,
    All that ever was
    Joyous, and clear, and fresh, thy music doth surpass: _60

    Teach us, Sprite or Bird,
    What sweet thoughts are thine:
    I have never heard
    Praise of love or wine
    That panted forth a flood of rapture so divine. _65

    Chorus Hymeneal,
    Or triumphal chant,
    Matched with thine would be all
    But an empty vaunt,
    A thing wherein we feel there is some hidden want. _70

    What objects are the fountains
    Of thy happy strain?
    What fields, or waves, or mountains?
    What shapes of sky or plain?
    What love of thine own kind? what ignorance of pain? _75

    With thy clear keen joyance
    Languor cannot be:
    Shadow of annoyance
    Never came near thee:
    Thou lovest—but ne'er knew love's sad satiety. _80

    Waking or asleep,
    Thou of death must deem
    Things more true and deep
    Than we mortals dream,
    Or how could thy notes flow in such a crystal stream? _85

    We look before and after,
    And pine for what is not:
    Our sincerest laughter
    With some pain is fraught;
    Our sweetest songs are those that tell of saddest thought. _90

    Yet if we could scorn
    Hate, and pride, and fear;
    If we were things born
    Not to shed a tear,
    I know not how thy joy we ever should come near. _95

    Better than all measures
    Of delightful sound,
    Better than all treasures
    That in books are found,
    Thy skill to poet were, thou scorner of the ground! _100

    Teach me half the gladness
    That thy brain must know,
    Such harmonious madness
    From my lips would flow
    The world should listen then—as I am listening now. _105

    NOTE:
    _55 those Harvard manuscript: these 1820, 1839.


    ***


    ODE TO LIBERTY.



    [Composed early in 1820, and published, with "Prometheus Unbound", in
    the same year. A transcript in Shelley's hand of lines 1-21 is included
    in the Harvard manuscript book, and amongst the Boscombe manuscripts
    there is a fragment of a rough draft (Garnett). For further particulars
    concerning the text see Editor's Notes.]

    Yet, Freedom, yet, thy banner, torn but flying,
    Streams like a thunder-storm against the wind.—BYRON.

    1.
    A glorious people vibrated again
    The lightning of the nations: Liberty
    From heart to heart, from tower to tower, o'er Spain,
    Scattering contagious fire into the sky,
    Gleamed. My soul spurned the chains of its dismay, _5
    And in the rapid plumes of song
    Clothed itself, sublime and strong;
    As a young eagle soars the morning clouds among,
    Hovering inverse o'er its accustomed prey;
    Till from its station in the Heaven of fame _10
    The Spirit's whirlwind rapped it, and the ray
    Of the remotest sphere of living flame
    Which paves the void was from behind it flung,
    As foam from a ship's swiftness, when there came
    A voice out of the deep: I will record the same. _15

    2.
    The Sun and the serenest Moon sprang forth:
    The burning stars of the abyss were hurled
    Into the depths of Heaven. The daedal earth,
    That island in the ocean of the world,
    Hung in its cloud of all-sustaining air: _20
    But this divinest universe
    Was yet a chaos and a curse,
    For thou wert not: but, power from worst producing worse,
    The spirit of the beasts was kindled there,
    And of the birds, and of the watery forms, _25
    And there was war among them, and despair
    Within them, raging without truce or terms:
    The bosom of their violated nurse
    Groaned, for beasts warred on beasts, and worms on worms,
    And men on men; each heart was as a hell of storms. _30

    3.
    Man, the imperial shape, then multiplied
    His generations under the pavilion
    Of the Sun's throne: palace and pyramid,
    Temple and prison, to many a swarming million
    Were, as to mountain-wolves their ragged caves. _35
    This human living multitude
    Was savage, cunning, blind, and rude,
    For thou wert not; but o'er the populous solitude,
    Like one fierce cloud over a waste of waves,
    Hung Tyranny; beneath, sate deified _40
    The sister-pest, congregator of slaves;
    Into the shadow of her pinions wide
    Anarchs and priests, who feed on gold and blood
    Till with the stain their inmost souls are dyed,
    Drove the astonished herds of men from every side. _45

    4.
    The nodding promontories, and blue isles,
    And cloud-like mountains, and dividuous waves
    Of Greece, basked glorious in the open smiles
    Of favouring Heaven: from their enchanted caves
    Prophetic echoes flung dim melody. _50
    On the unapprehensive wild
    The vine, the corn, the olive mild,
    Grew savage yet, to human use unreconciled;
    And, like unfolded flowers beneath the sea,
    Like the man's thought dark in the infant's brain, _55
    Like aught that is which wraps what is to be,
    Art's deathless dreams lay veiled by many a vein
    Of Parian stone; and, yet a speechless child,
    Verse murmured, and Philosophy did strain
    Her lidless eyes for thee; when o'er the Aegean main _60

    5.
    Athens arose: a city such as vision
    Builds from the purple crags and silver towers
    Of battlemented cloud, as in derision
    Of kingliest masonry: the ocean-floors
    Pave it; the evening sky pavilions it; _65
    Its portals are inhabited
    By thunder-zoned winds, each head
    Within its cloudy wings with sun-fire garlanded,—
    A divine work! Athens, diviner yet,
    Gleamed with its crest of columns, on the will _70
    Of man, as on a mount of diamond, set;
    For thou wert, and thine all-creative skill
    Peopled, with forms that mock the eternal dead
    In marble immortality, that hill
    Which was thine earliest throne and latest oracle. _75

    6.
    Within the surface of Time's fleeting river
    Its wrinkled image lies, as then it lay
    Immovably unquiet, and for ever
    It trembles, but it cannot pass away!
    The voices of thy bards and sages thunder _80
    With an earth-awakening blast
    Through the caverns of the past:
    (Religion veils her eyes; Oppression shrinks aghast:)
    A winged sound of joy, and love, and wonder,
    Which soars where Expectation never flew, _85
    Rending the veil of space and time asunder!
    One ocean feeds the clouds, and streams, and dew;
    One Sun illumines Heaven; one Spirit vast
    With life and love makes chaos ever new,
    As Athens doth the world with thy delight renew. _90

    7.
    Then Rome was, and from thy deep bosom fairest,
    Like a wolf-cub from a Cadmaean Maenad,
    She drew the milk of greatness, though thy dearest
    From that Elysian food was yet unweaned;
    And many a deed of terrible uprightness _95
    By thy sweet love was sanctified;
    And in thy smile, and by thy side,
    Saintly Camillus lived, and firm Atilius died.
    But when tears stained thy robe of vestal-whiteness,
    And gold profaned thy Capitolian throne, _100
    Thou didst desert, with spirit-winged lightness,
    The senate of the tyrants: they sunk prone
    Slaves of one tyrant: Palatinus sighed
    Faint echoes of Ionian song; that tone
    Thou didst delay to hear, lamenting to disown _105

    8.
    From what Hyrcanian glen or frozen hill,
    Or piny promontory of the Arctic main,
    Or utmost islet inaccessible,
    Didst thou lament the ruin of thy reign,
    Teaching the woods and waves, and desert rocks, _110
    And every Naiad's ice-cold urn,
    To talk in echoes sad and stern
    Of that sublimest lore which man had dared unlearn?
    For neither didst thou watch the wizard flocks
    Of the Scald's dreams, nor haunt the Druid's sleep. _115
    What if the tears rained through thy shattered locks
    Were quickly dried? for thou didst groan, not weep,
    When from its sea of death, to kill and burn,
    The Galilean serpent forth did creep,
    And made thy world an undistinguishable heap. _120

    9.
    A thousand years the Earth cried, 'Where art thou?'
    And then the shadow of thy coming fell
    On Saxon Alfred's olive-cinctured brow:
    And many a warrior-peopled citadel.
    Like rocks which fire lifts out of the flat deep, _125
    Arose in sacred Italy,
    Frowning o'er the tempestuous sea
    Of kings, and priests, and slaves, in tower-crowned majesty;
    That multitudinous anarchy did sweep
    And burst around their walls, like idle foam, _130
    Whilst from the human spirit's deepest deep
    Strange melody with love and awe struck dumb
    Dissonant arms; and Art, which cannot die,
    With divine wand traced on our earthly home
    Fit imagery to pave Heaven's everlasting dome. _135

    10.
    Thou huntress swifter than the Moon! thou terror
    Of the world's wolves! thou bearer of the quiver,
    Whose sunlike shafts pierce tempest-winged Error,
    As light may pierce the clouds when they dissever
    In the calm regions of the orient day! _140
    Luther caught thy wakening glance;
    Like lightning, from his leaden lance
    Reflected, it dissolved the visions of the trance
    In which, as in a tomb, the nations lay;
    And England's prophets hailed thee as their queen, _145
    In songs whose music cannot pass away,
    Though it must flow forever: not unseen
    Before the spirit-sighted countenance
    Of Milton didst thou pass, from the sad scene
    Beyond whose night he saw, with a dejected mien. _150

    11.
    The eager hours and unreluctant years
    As on a dawn-illumined mountain stood.
    Trampling to silence their loud hopes and fears,
    Darkening each other with their multitude,
    And cried aloud, 'Liberty!' Indignation _155
    Answered Pity from her cave;
    Death grew pale within the grave,
    And Desolation howled to the destroyer, Save!
    When like Heaven's Sun girt by the exhalation
    Of its own glorious light, thou didst arise. _160
    Chasing thy foes from nation unto nation
    Like shadows: as if day had cloven the skies
    At dreaming midnight o'er the western wave,
    Men started, staggering with a glad surprise,
    Under the lightnings of thine unfamiliar eyes. _165

    12.
    Thou Heaven of earth! what spells could pall thee then
    In ominous eclipse? a thousand years
    Bred from the slime of deep Oppression's den.
    Dyed all thy liquid light with blood and tears.
    Till thy sweet stars could weep the stain away; _170
    How like Bacchanals of blood
    Round France, the ghastly vintage, stood
    Destruction's sceptred slaves, and Folly's mitred brood!
    When one, like them, but mightier far than they,
    The Anarch of thine own bewildered powers, _175
    Rose: armies mingled in obscure array,
    Like clouds with clouds, darkening the sacred bowers
    Of serene Heaven. He, by the past pursued,
    Rests with those dead, but unforgotten hours,
    Whose ghosts scare victor kings in their ancestral towers. _180

    13.
    England yet sleeps: was she not called of old?
    Spain calls her now, as with its thrilling thunder
    Vesuvius wakens Aetna, and the cold
    Snow-crags by its reply are cloven in sunder:
    O'er the lit waves every Aeolian isle _185
    From Pithecusa to Pelorus
    Howls, and leaps, and glares in chorus:
    They cry, 'Be dim; ye lamps of Heaven suspended o'er us!'
    Her chains are threads of gold, she need but smile
    And they dissolve; but Spain's were links of steel, _190
    Till bit to dust by virtue's keenest file.
    Twins of a single destiny! appeal
    To the eternal years enthroned before us
    In the dim West; impress us from a seal,
    All ye have thought and done! Time cannot dare conceal. _195

    14.
    Tomb of Arminius! render up thy dead
    Till, like a standard from a watch-tower's staff,
    His soul may stream over the tyrant's head;
    Thy victory shall be his epitaph,
    Wild Bacchanal of truth's mysterious wine, _200
    King-deluded Germany,
    His dead spirit lives in thee.
    Why do we fear or hope? thou art already free!
    And thou, lost Paradise of this divine
    And glorious world! thou flowery wilderness! _205
    Thou island of eternity! thou shrine
    Where Desolation, clothed with loveliness,
    Worships the thing thou wert! O Italy,
    Gather thy blood into thy heart; repress
    The beasts who make their dens thy sacred palaces. _210

    15.
    Oh, that the free would stamp the impious name
    Of KING into the dust! or write it there,
    So that this blot upon the page of fame
    Were as a serpent's path, which the light air
    Erases, and the flat sands close behind! _215
    Ye the oracle have heard:
    Lift the victory-flashing sword.
    And cut the snaky knots of this foul gordian word,
    Which, weak itself as stubble, yet can bind
    Into a mass, irrefragably firm, _220
    The axes and the rods which awe mankind;
    The sound has poison in it, 'tis the sperm
    Of what makes life foul, cankerous, and abhorred;
    Disdain not thou, at thine appointed term,
    To set thine armed heel on this reluctant worm. _225

    16.
    Oh, that the wise from their bright minds would kindle
    Such lamps within the dome of this dim world,
    That the pale name of PRIEST might shrink and dwindle
    Into the hell from which it first was hurled,
    A scoff of impious pride from fiends impure; _230
    Till human thoughts might kneel alone,
    Each before the judgement-throne
    Of its own aweless soul, or of the Power unknown!
    Oh, that the words which make the thoughts obscure
    From which they spring, as clouds of glimmering dew _235
    From a white lake blot Heaven's blue portraiture,
    Were stripped of their thin masks and various hue
    And frowns and smiles and splendours not their own,
    Till in the nakedness of false and true
    They stand before their Lord, each to receive its due! _240

    17.
    He who taught man to vanquish whatsoever
    Can be between the cradle and the grave
    Crowned him the King of Life. Oh, vain endeavour!
    If on his own high will, a willing slave,
    He has enthroned the oppression and the oppressor _245
    What if earth can clothe and feed
    Amplest millions at their need,
    And power in thought be as the tree within the seed?
    Or what if Art, an ardent intercessor,
    Driving on fiery wings to Nature's throne, _250
    Checks the great mother stooping to caress her,
    And cries: 'Give me, thy child, dominion
    Over all height and depth'? if Life can breed
    New wants, and wealth from those who toil and groan,
    Rend of thy gifts and hers a thousandfold for one! _255

    18.
    Come thou, but lead out of the inmost cave
    Of man's deep spirit, as the morning-star
    Beckons the Sun from the Eoan wave,
    Wisdom. I hear the pennons of her car
    Self-moving, like cloud charioted by flame; _260
    Comes she not, and come ye not,
    Rulers of eternal thought,
    To judge, with solemn truth, life's ill-apportioned lot?
    Blind Love, and equal Justice, and the Fame
    Of what has been, the Hope of what will be? _265
    O Liberty! if such could be thy name
    Wert thou disjoined from these, or they from thee:
    If thine or theirs were treasures to be bought
    By blood or tears, have not the wise and free
    Wept tears, and blood like tears?—The solemn harmony _270

    19.
    Paused, and the Spirit of that mighty singing
    To its abyss was suddenly withdrawn;
    Then, as a wild swan, when sublimely winging
    Its path athwart the thunder-smoke of dawn,
    Sinks headlong through the aereal golden light _275
    On the heavy-sounding plain,
    When the bolt has pierced its brain;
    As summer clouds dissolve, unburthened of their rain;
    As a far taper fades with fading night,
    As a brief insect dies with dying day,— _280
    My song, its pinions disarrayed of might,
    Drooped; o'er it closed the echoes far away
    Of the great voice which did its flight sustain,
    As waves which lately paved his watery way
    Hiss round a drowner's head in their tempestuous play. _285

    NOTES:
    _4 into]unto Harvard manuscript.
    _9 inverse cj. Rossetti; in verse 1820.
    _92 See the Bacchae of Euripides—[SHELLEY'S NOTE].
    _113 lore 1839; love 1820.
    _116 shattered]scattered cj. Rossetti.
    _134 wand 1820; want 1830.
    _194 us]as cj. Forman.
    _212 KING Boscombe manuscript; **** 1820, 1839; CHRIST cj. Swinburne.
    _249 Or 1839; O, 1820.
    _250 Driving 1820; Diving 1839.

    ***


    CANCELLED PASSAGE OF THE ODE TO LIBERTY.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Within a cavern of man's trackless spirit
    Is throned an Image, so intensely fair
    That the adventurous thoughts that wander near it
    Worship, and as they kneel, tremble and wear
    The splendour of its presence, and the light _5
    Penetrates their dreamlike frame
    Till they become charged with the strength of flame.

    ***


    TO —.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    I fear thy kisses, gentle maiden,
    Thou needest not fear mine;
    My spirit is too deeply laden
    Ever to burthen thine.

    2.
    I fear thy mien, thy tones, thy motion, _5
    Thou needest not fear mine;
    Innocent is the heart's devotion
    With which I worship thine.

    ***


    ARETHUSA.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and dated by her
    'Pisa, 1820.' There is a fair draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at
    the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903,
    page 24.]

    1.
    Arethusa arose
    From her couch of snows
    In the Acroceraunian mountains,—
    From cloud and from crag,
    With many a jag, _5
    Shepherding her bright fountains.
    She leapt down the rocks,
    With her rainbow locks
    Streaming among the streams;—
    Her steps paved with green _10
    The downward ravine
    Which slopes to the western gleams;
    And gliding and springing
    She went, ever singing,
    In murmurs as soft as sleep; _15
    The Earth seemed to love her,
    And Heaven smiled above her,
    As she lingered towards the deep.

    2.
    Then Alpheus bold,
    On his glacier cold, _20
    With his trident the mountains strook;
    And opened a chasm
    In the rocks—with the spasm
    All Erymanthus shook.
    And the black south wind _25
    It unsealed behind
    The urns of the silent snow,
    And earthquake and thunder
    Did rend in sunder
    The bars of the springs below. _30
    And the beard and the hair
    Of the River-god were
    Seen through the torrent's sweep,
    As he followed the light
    Of the fleet nymph's flight _35
    To the brink of the Dorian deep.

    3.
    'Oh, save me! Oh, guide me!
    And bid the deep hide me,
    For he grasps me now by the hair!'
    The loud Ocean heard, _40
    To its blue depth stirred,
    And divided at her prayer;
    And under the water
    The Earth's white daughter
    Fled like a sunny beam; _45
    Behind her descended
    Her billows, unblended
    With the brackish Dorian stream:—
    Like a gloomy stain
    On the emerald main _50
    Alpheus rushed behind,—
    As an eagle pursuing
    A dove to its ruin
    Down the streams of the cloudy wind.

    4.
    Under the bowers _55
    Where the Ocean Powers
    Sit on their pearled thrones;
    Through the coral woods
    Of the weltering floods,
    Over heaps of unvalued stones; _60
    Through the dim beams
    Which amid the streams
    Weave a network of coloured light;
    And under the caves,
    Where the shadowy waves _65
    Are as green as the forest's night:—
    Outspeeding the shark,
    And the sword-fish dark,
    Under the Ocean's foam,
    And up through the rifts _70
    Of the mountain clifts
    They passed to their Dorian home.

    5.
    And now from their fountains
    In Enna's mountains,
    Down one vale where the morning basks, _75
    Like friends once parted
    Grown single-hearted,
    They ply their watery tasks.
    At sunrise they leap
    From their cradles steep _80
    In the cave of the shelving hill;
    At noontide they flow
    Through the woods below
    And the meadows of asphodel;
    And at night they sleep _85
    In the rocking deep
    Beneath the Ortygian shore;—
    Like spirits that lie
    In the azure sky
    When they love but live no more. _90

    NOTES:
    _6 unsealed B.; concealed 1824.
    _31 And the B.; The 1824.
    _69 Ocean's B.; ocean 1824.

    ***


    SONG OF PROSERPINE WHILE GATHERING FLOWERS ON THE PLAIN OF ENNA.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. There
    is a fair draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian
    Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination," etc., 1903, page 24.]

    1.
    Sacred Goddess, Mother Earth,
    Thou from whose immortal bosom
    Gods, and men, and beasts have birth,
    Leaf and blade, and bud and blossom,
    Breathe thine influence most divine _5
    On thine own child, Proserpine.

    2.
    If with mists of evening dew
    Thou dost nourish these young flowers
    Till they grow, in scent and hue,
    Fairest children of the Hours, _10
    Breathe thine influence most divine
    On thine own child, Proserpine.

    ***


    HYMN OF APOLLO.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a fair
    draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr. C.D.
    Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 25.]

    1.
    The sleepless Hours who watch me as I lie,
    Curtained with star-inwoven tapestries
    From the broad moonlight of the sky,
    Fanning the busy dreams from my dim eyes,—
    Waken me when their Mother, the gray Dawn, _5
    Tells them that dreams and that the moon is gone.

    2.
    Then I arise, and climbing Heaven's blue dome,
    I walk over the mountains and the waves,
    Leaving my robe upon the ocean foam;
    My footsteps pave the clouds with fire; the caves _10
    Are filled with my bright presence, and the air
    Leaves the green Earth to my embraces bare.

    3.
    The sunbeams are my shafts, with which I kill
    Deceit, that loves the night and fears the day;
    All men who do or even imagine ill _15
    Fly me, and from the glory of my ray
    Good minds and open actions take new might,
    Until diminished by the reign of Night.

    4.
    I feed the clouds, the rainbows and the flowers
    With their aethereal colours; the moon's globe _20
    And the pure stars in their eternal bowers
    Are cinctured with my power as with a robe;
    Whatever lamps on Earth or Heaven may shine
    Are portions of one power, which is mine.

    5.
    I stand at noon upon the peak of Heaven, _25
    Then with unwilling steps I wander down
    Into the clouds of the Atlantic even;
    For grief that I depart they weep and frown:
    What look is more delightful than the smile
    With which I soothe them from the western isle? _30

    6.
    I am the eye with which the Universe
    Beholds itself and knows itself divine;
    All harmony of instrument or verse,
    All prophecy, all medicine is mine,
    All light of art or nature;—to my song _35
    Victory and praise in its own right belong.

    NOTES:
    _32 itself divine]it is divine B.
    _34 is B.; are 1824.
    _36 its cj. Rossetti, 1870, B.; their 1824.

    ***


    HYMN OF PAN.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a fair
    draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr. C.D.
    Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 25.]

    1.
    From the forests and highlands
    We come, we come;
    From the river-girt islands,
    Where loud waves are dumb
    Listening to my sweet pipings. _5
    The wind in the reeds and the rushes,
    The bees on the bells of thyme,
    The birds on the myrtle bushes,
    The cicale above in the lime,
    And the lizards below in the grass, _10
    Were as silent as ever old Tmolus was,
    Listening to my sweet pipings.

    2.
    Liquid Peneus was flowing,
    And all dark Tempe lay
    In Pelion's shadow, outgrowing _15
    The light of the dying day,
    Speeded by my sweet pipings.
    The Sileni, and Sylvans, and Fauns,
    And the Nymphs of the woods and the waves,
    To the edge of the moist river-lawns, _20
    And the brink of the dewy caves,
    And all that did then attend and follow,
    Were silent with love, as you now, Apollo,
    With envy of my sweet pipings.

    3.
    I sang of the dancing stars, _25
    I sang of the daedal Earth,
    And of Heaven—and the giant wars,
    And Love, and Death, and Birth,—
    And then I changed my pipings,—
    Singing how down the vale of Maenalus _30
    I pursued a maiden and clasped a reed.
    Gods and men, we are all deluded thus!
    It breaks in our bosom and then we bleed:
    All wept, as I think both ye now would,
    If envy or age had not frozen your blood, _35
    At the sorrow of my sweet pipings.

    NOTE:
    _5, _12 Listening to]Listening B.

    ***


    THE QUESTION.



    [Published by Leigh Hunt (with the signature Sigma) in "The Literary
    Pocket-Book", 1822. Reprinted by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
    1824. Copies exist in the Harvard manuscript book, amongst the Boscombe
    manuscripts, and amongst Ollier manuscripts.]

    1.
    I dreamed that, as I wandered by the way,
    Bare Winter suddenly was changed to Spring,
    And gentle odours led my steps astray,
    Mixed with a sound of waters murmuring
    Along a shelving bank of turf, which lay _5
    Under a copse, and hardly dared to fling
    Its green arms round the bosom of the stream,
    But kissed it and then fled, as thou mightest in dream.

    2.
    There grew pied wind-flowers and violets,
    Daisies, those pearled Arcturi of the earth, _10
    The constellated flower that never sets;
    Faint oxslips; tender bluebells, at whose birth
    The sod scarce heaved; and that tall flower that wets—
    Like a child, half in tenderness and mirth—
    Its mother's face with Heaven's collected tears, _15
    When the low wind, its playmate's voice, it hears.

    3.
    And in the warm hedge grew lush eglantine,
    Green cowbind and the moonlight-coloured may,
    And cherry-blossoms, and white cups, whose wine
    Was the bright dew, yet drained not by the day; _20
    And wild roses, and ivy serpentine,
    With its dark buds and leaves, wandering astray;
    And flowers azure, black, and streaked with gold,
    Fairer than any wakened eyes behold.

    4.
    And nearer to the river's trembling edge _25
    There grew broad flag-flowers, purple pranked with white.
    And starry river buds among the sedge,
    And floating water-lilies, broad and bright,
    Which lit the oak that overhung the hedge
    With moonlight beams of their own watery light; _30
    And bulrushes, and reeds of such deep green
    As soothed the dazzled eye with sober sheen.

    5.
    Methought that of these visionary flowers
    I made a nosegay, bound in such a way
    That the same hues, which in their natural bowers _35
    Were mingled or opposed, the like array
    Kept these imprisoned children of the Hours
    Within my hand,—and then, elate and gay,
    I hastened to the spot whence I had come,
    That I might there present it!—Oh! to whom? _40

    NOTES:
    _14 Like...mirth Harvard manuscript, Boscombe manuscript;
    wanting in Ollier manuscript, 1822, 1824, 1839.
    _15 Heaven's collected Harvard manuscript, Ollier manuscript, 1822;
    Heaven-collected 1824, 1839.

    ***


    THE TWO SPIRITS: AN ALLEGORY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    FIRST SPIRIT:
    O thou, who plumed with strong desire
    Wouldst float above the earth, beware!
    A Shadow tracks thy flight of fire—
    Night is coming!
    Bright are the regions of the air, _5
    And among the winds and beams
    It were delight to wander there—
    Night is coming!


    SECOND SPIRIT
    :
    The deathless stars are bright above;
    If I would cross the shade of night, _10
    Within my heart is the lamp of love,
    And that is day!
    And the moon will smile with gentle light
    On my golden plumes where'er they move;
    The meteors will linger round my flight, _15
    And make night day.


    FIRST SPIRIT
    :
    But if the whirlwinds of darkness waken
    Hail, and lightning, and stormy rain;
    See, the bounds of the air are shaken—
    Night is coming! _20
    The red swift clouds of the hurricane
    Yon declining sun have overtaken,
    The clash of the hail sweeps over the plain—
    Night is coming!


    SECOND SPIRIT
    :
    I see the light, and I hear the sound; _25
    I'll sail on the flood of the tempest dark
    With the calm within and the light around
    Which makes night day:
    And thou, when the gloom is deep and stark,
    Look from thy dull earth, slumber-bound, _30
    My moon-like flight thou then mayst mark
    On high, far away.


    ...


    Some say there is a precipice
    Where one vast pine is frozen to ruin
    O'er piles of snow and chasms of ice _35
    Mid Alpine mountains;
    And that the languid storm pursuing
    That winged shape, for ever flies
    Round those hoar branches, aye renewing
    Its aery fountains. _40


    Some say when nights are dry and clear,
    And the death-dews sleep on the morass,
    Sweet whispers are heard by the traveller,
    Which make night day:
    And a silver shape like his early love doth pass _45
    Upborne by her wild and glittering hair,
    And when he awakes on the fragrant grass,
    He finds night day.


    NOTES
    :
    _2 Wouldst 1839; Would 1824.
    _31 moon-like 1824; moonlight 1839.
    _44 make]makes 1824, 1839.


    ***






    ODE TO NAPLES.



    (The Author has connected many recollections of his visit to Pompeii
    and Baiae with the enthusiasm excited by the intelligence of the
    proclamation of a Constitutional Government at Naples. This has given a
    tinge of picturesque and descriptive imagery to the introductory Epodes
    which depicture these scenes, and some of the majestic feelings
    permanently connected with the scene of this animating
    event.—[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])

    [Composed at San Juliano di Pisa, August 17-25, 1820; published in
    "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a copy, 'for the most part neat and
    legible,' amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See
    Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, pages 14-18.]

    EPODE 1a.



    I stood within the City disinterred;
    And heard the autumnal leaves like light footfalls
    Of spirits passing through the streets; and heard
    The Mountain's slumberous voice at intervals
    Thrill through those roofless halls; _5
    The oracular thunder penetrating shook
    The listening soul in my suspended blood;
    I felt that Earth out of her deep heart spoke—
    I felt, but heard not:—through white columns glowed
    The isle-sustaining ocean-flood, _10
    A plane of light between two heavens of azure!
    Around me gleamed many a bright sepulchre
    Of whose pure beauty, Time, as if his pleasure
    Were to spare Death, had never made erasure;
    But every living lineament was clear _15
    As in the sculptor's thought; and there
    The wreaths of stony myrtle, ivy, and pine,
    Like winter leaves o'ergrown by moulded snow,
    Seemed only not to move and grow
    Because the crystal silence of the air _20
    Weighed on their life; even as the Power divine
    Which then lulled all things, brooded upon mine.

    NOTE:
    _1 Pompeii.—[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]

    EPODE 2a.



    Then gentle winds arose
    With many a mingled close
    Of wild Aeolian sound, and mountain-odours keen; _25
    And where the Baian ocean
    Welters with airlike motion,
    Within, above, around its bowers of starry green,
    Moving the sea-flowers in those purple caves,
    Even as the ever stormless atmosphere _30
    Floats o'er the Elysian realm,
    It bore me, like an Angel, o'er the waves
    Of sunlight, whose swift pinnace of dewy air
    No storm can overwhelm.
    I sailed, where ever flows _35
    Under the calm Serene
    A spirit of deep emotion
    From the unknown graves
    Of the dead Kings of Melody.
    Shadowy Aornos darkened o'er the helm _40
    The horizontal aether; Heaven stripped bare
    Its depth over Elysium, where the prow
    Made the invisible water white as snow;
    From that Typhaean mount, Inarime,
    There streamed a sunbright vapour, like the standard _45
    Of some aethereal host;
    Whilst from all the coast,
    Louder and louder, gathering round, there wandered
    Over the oracular woods and divine sea
    Prophesyings which grew articulate—
    They seize me—I must speak them!—be they fate! _50

    NOTES:
    _25 odours B.; odour 1824.
    _42 depth B.; depths 1824.
    _45 sun-bright B.; sunlit 1824.
    _39 Homer and Virgil.—[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]

    STROPHE 1.



    Naples! thou Heart of men which ever pantest
    Naked, beneath the lidless eye of Heaven!
    Elysian City, which to calm enchantest
    The mutinous air and sea! they round thee, even _55
    As sleep round Love, are driven!
    Metropolis of a ruined Paradise
    Long lost, late won, and yet but half regained!
    Bright Altar of the bloodless sacrifice
    Which armed Victory offers up unstained _60
    To Love, the flower-enchained!
    Thou which wert once, and then didst cease to be,
    Now art, and henceforth ever shalt be, free,
    If Hope, and Truth, and Justice can avail,—
    Hail, hail, all hail! _65

    STROPHE 2.



    Thou youngest giant birth
    Which from the groaning earth
    Leap'st, clothed in armour of impenetrable scale!
    Last of the Intercessors!
    Who 'gainst the Crowned Transgressors _70
    Pleadest before God's love! Arrayed in Wisdom's mail,
    Wave thy lightning lance in mirth
    Nor let thy high heart fail,
    Though from their hundred gates the leagued Oppressors
    With hurried legions move! _75
    Hail, hail, all hail!

    ANTISTROPHE 1a.



    What though Cimmerian Anarchs dare blaspheme
    Freedom and thee? thy shield is as a mirror
    To make their blind slaves see, and with fierce gleam
    To turn his hungry sword upon the wearer; _80
    A new Actaeon's error
    Shall theirs have been—devoured by their own hounds!
    Be thou like the imperial Basilisk
    Killing thy foe with unapparent wounds!
    Gaze on Oppression, till at that dread risk _85
    Aghast she pass from the Earth's disk:
    Fear not, but gaze—for freemen mightier grow,
    And slaves more feeble, gazing on their foe:—
    If Hope, and Truth, and Justice may avail,
    Thou shalt be great—All hail! _90

    ANTISTROPHE 2a.



    From Freedom's form divine,
    From Nature's inmost shrine,
    Strip every impious gawd, rend
    Error veil by veil;
    O'er Ruin desolate,
    O'er Falsehood's fallen state, _95
    Sit thou sublime, unawed; be the Destroyer pale!
    And equal laws be thine,
    And winged words let sail,
    Freighted with truth even from the throne of God:
    That wealth, surviving fate, _100
    Be thine.—All hail!

    NOTE:
    _100 wealth-surviving cj. A.C. Bradley.

    ANTISTROPHE 1b.



    Didst thou not start to hear Spain's thrilling paean
    From land to land re-echoed solemnly,
    Till silence became music? From the Aeaean
    To the cold Alps, eternal Italy _105
    Starts to hear thine! The Sea
    Which paves the desert streets of Venice laughs
    In light, and music; widowed Genoa wan
    By moonlight spells ancestral epitaphs,
    Murmuring, 'Where is Doria?' fair Milan, _110
    Within whose veins long ran
    The viper's palsying venom, lifts her heel
    To bruise his head. The signal and the seal
    (If Hope and Truth and Justice can avail)
    Art thou of all these hopes.—O hail! _115

    NOTES:
    _104 Aeaea, the island of Circe.—[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
    _112 The viper was the armorial device of the Visconti,
    tyrants of Milan.—[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]

    ANTISTROPHE 2b.



    Florence! beneath the sun,
    Of cities fairest one,
    Blushes within her bower for Freedom's expectation:
    From eyes of quenchless hope
    Rome tears the priestly cope, _120
    As ruling once by power, so now by admiration,—
    An athlete stripped to run
    From a remoter station
    For the high prize lost on Philippi's shore:—
    As then Hope, Truth, and Justice did avail, _125
    So now may Fraud and Wrong! O hail!

    EPODE 1b.



    Hear ye the march as of the Earth-born Forms
    Arrayed against the ever-living Gods?
    The crash and darkness of a thousand storms
    Bursting their inaccessible abodes _130
    Of crags and thunder-clouds?
    See ye the banners blazoned to the day,
    Inwrought with emblems of barbaric pride?
    Dissonant threats kill Silence far away,
    The serene Heaven which wraps our Eden wide _135
    With iron light is dyed;
    The Anarchs of the North lead forth their legions
    Like Chaos o'er creation, uncreating;
    An hundred tribes nourished on strange religions
    And lawless slaveries,—down the aereal regions _140
    Of the white Alps, desolating,
    Famished wolves that bide no waiting,
    Blotting the glowing footsteps of old glory,
    Trampling our columned cities into dust,
    Their dull and savage lust _145
    On Beauty's corse to sickness satiating—
    They come! The fields they tread look black and hoary
    With fire—from their red feet the streams run gory!

    EPODE 2b.



    Great Spirit, deepest Love!
    Which rulest and dost move _150
    All things which live and are, within the Italian shore;
    Who spreadest Heaven around it,
    Whose woods, rocks, waves, surround it;
    Who sittest in thy star, o'er Ocean's western floor;
    Spirit of beauty! at whose soft command _155
    The sunbeams and the showers distil its foison
    From the Earth's bosom chill;
    Oh, bid those beams be each a blinding brand
    Of lightning! bid those showers be dews of poison!
    Bid the Earth's plenty kill! _160
    Bid thy bright Heaven above,
    Whilst light and darkness bound it,
    Be their tomb who planned
    To make it ours and thine!
    Or, with thine harmonizing ardours fill _165
    And raise thy sons, as o'er the prone horizon
    Thy lamp feeds every twilight wave with fire—
    Be man's high hope and unextinct desire
    The instrument to work thy will divine!
    Then clouds from sunbeams, antelopes from leopards, _170
    And frowns and fears from thee,
    Would not more swiftly flee
    Than Celtic wolves from the Ausonian shepherds.—
    Whatever, Spirit, from thy starry shrine
    Thou yieldest or withholdest, oh, let be _175
    This city of thy worship ever free!

    NOTES:
    _143 old 1824; lost B.
    _147 black 1824; blue B.

    ***


    AUTUMN: A DIRGE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    The warm sun is failing, the bleak wind is wailing,
    The bare boughs are sighing, the pale flowers are dying,
    And the Year
    On the earth her death-bed, in a shroud of leaves dead,
    Is lying. _5
    Come, Months, come away,
    From November to May,
    In your saddest array;
    Follow the bier
    Of the dead cold Year, _10
    And like dim shadows watch by her sepulchre.

    2.
    The chill rain is falling, the nipped worm is crawling,
    The rivers are swelling, the thunder is knelling
    For the Year;
    The blithe swallows are flown, and the lizards each gone _15
    To his dwelling;
    Come, Months, come away;
    Put on white, black, and gray;
    Let your light sisters play—
    Ye, follow the bier _20
    Of the dead cold Year,
    And make her grave green with tear on tear.

    ***


    THE WANING MOON.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    And like a dying lady, lean and pale,
    Who totters forth, wrapped in a gauzy veil,
    Out of her chamber, led by the insane
    And feeble wanderings of her fading brain,
    The moon arose up in the murky East, _5
    A white and shapeless mass—

    ***


    TO THE MOON.



    [Published (1) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, (2) by W.M.
    Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works", 1870.]

    1.
    Art thou pale for weariness
    Of climbing heaven and gazing on the earth,
    Wandering companionless
    Among the stars that have a different birth,—
    And ever changing, like a joyless eye _5
    That finds no object worth its constancy?

    2.
    Thou chosen sister of the Spirit,
    That grazes on thee till in thee it pities...

    ***


    DEATH.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    Death is here and death is there,
    Death is busy everywhere,
    All around, within, beneath,
    Above is death—and we are death.

    2.
    Death has set his mark and seal _5
    On all we are and all we feel,
    On all we know and all we fear,

    ...

    3.
    First our pleasures die—and then
    Our hopes, and then our fears—and when
    These are dead, the debt is due, _10
    Dust claims dust—and we die too.

    4.
    All things that we love and cherish,
    Like ourselves must fade and perish;
    Such is our rude mortal lot—
    Love itself would, did they not. _15

    ***


    LIBERTY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    The fiery mountains answer each other;
    Their thunderings are echoed from zone to zone;
    The tempestuous oceans awake one another,
    And the ice-rocks are shaken round Winter's throne,
    When the clarion of the Typhoon is blown. _5

    2.
    From a single cloud the lightening flashes,
    Whilst a thousand isles are illumined around,
    Earthquake is trampling one city to ashes,
    An hundred are shuddering and tottering; the sound
    Is bellowing underground. _10

    3.
    But keener thy gaze than the lightening's glare,
    And swifter thy step than the earthquake's tramp;
    Thou deafenest the rage of the ocean; thy stare
    Makes blind the volcanoes; the sun's bright lamp
    To thine is a fen-fire damp. _15

    4.
    From billow and mountain and exhalation
    The sunlight is darted through vapour and blast;
    From spirit to spirit, from nation to nation,
    From city to hamlet thy dawning is cast,—
    And tyrants and slaves are like shadows of night _20
    In the van of the morning light.

    NOTE:
    _4 zone editions 1824, 1839; throne later editions.

    ***


    SUMMER AND WINTER.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "The Keepsake", 1829. Mr. C.W.
    Frederickson of Brooklyn possesses a transcript in Mrs. Shelley's
    handwriting.]

    It was a bright and cheerful afternoon,
    Towards the end of the sunny month of June,
    When the north wind congregates in crowds
    The floating mountains of the silver clouds
    From the horizon—and the stainless sky _5
    Opens beyond them like eternity.
    All things rejoiced beneath the sun; the weeds,
    The river, and the corn-fields, and the reeds;
    The willow leaves that glanced in the light breeze,
    And the firm foliage of the larger trees. _10

    It was a winter such as when birds die
    In the deep forests; and the fishes lie
    Stiffened in the translucent ice, which makes
    Even the mud and slime of the warm lakes
    A wrinkled clod as hard as brick; and when, _15
    Among their children, comfortable men
    Gather about great fires, and yet feel cold:
    Alas, then, for the homeless beggar old!

    NOTE:
    _11 birds die 1839; birds do die 1829.

    ***


    THE TOWER OF FAMINE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "The Keepsake", 1829. Mr. C.W.
    Frederickson of Brooklyn possesses a transcript in Mrs. Shelley's
    handwriting.]

    Amid the desolation of a city,
    Which was the cradle, and is now the grave
    Of an extinguished people,—so that Pity

    Weeps o'er the shipwrecks of Oblivion's wave,
    There stands the Tower of Famine. It is built _5
    Upon some prison-homes, whose dwellers rave

    For bread, and gold, and blood: Pain, linked to Guilt,
    Agitates the light flame of their hours,
    Until its vital oil is spent or spilt.

    There stands the pile, a tower amid the towers _10
    And sacred domes; each marble-ribbed roof,
    The brazen-gated temples, and the bowers

    Of solitary wealth,—the tempest-proof
    Pavilions of the dark Italian air,—
    Are by its presence dimmed—they stand aloof, _15

    And are withdrawn—so that the world is bare;
    As if a spectre wrapped in shapeless terror
    Amid a company of ladies fair

    Should glide and glow, till it became a mirror
    Of all their beauty, and their hair and hue, _20
    The life of their sweet eyes, with all its error,
    Should be absorbed, till they to marble grew.

    NOTE:
    _7 For]With 1829.

    ***


    AN ALLEGORY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    A portal as of shadowy adamant
    Stands yawning on the highway of the life
    Which we all tread, a cavern huge and gaunt;
    Around it rages an unceasing strife
    Of shadows, like the restless clouds that haunt _5
    The gap of some cleft mountain, lifted high
    Into the whirlwinds of the upper sky.

    2.
    And many pass it by with careless tread,
    Not knowing that a shadowy ...
    Tracks every traveller even to where the dead _10
    Wait peacefully for their companion new;
    But others, by more curious humour led,
    Pause to examine;—these are very few,
    And they learn little there, except to know
    That shadows follow them where'er they go. _15

    NOTE:
    _8 pass Rossetti; passed editions 1824, 1839.

    ***


    THE WORLD'S WANDERERS.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    Tell me, thou Star, whose wings of light
    Speed thee in thy fiery flight,
    In what cavern of the night
    Will thy pinions close now?

    2.
    Tell me, Moon, thou pale and gray _5
    Pilgrim of Heaven's homeless way,
    In what depth of night or day
    Seekest thou repose now?

    3.
    Weary Wind, who wanderest
    Like the world's rejected guest, _10
    Hast thou still some secret nest
    On the tree or billow?

    ***


    SONNET.



    [Published by Leigh Hunt, "The Literary Pocket-Book", 1823. There is a
    transcript amongst the Ollier manuscripts, and another in the Harvard
    manuscript book.]

    Ye hasten to the grave! What seek ye there,
    Ye restless thoughts and busy purposes
    Of the idle brain, which the world's livery wear?
    O thou quick heart, which pantest to possess
    All that pale Expectation feigneth fair! _5
    Thou vainly curious mind which wouldest guess
    Whence thou didst come, and whither thou must go,
    And all that never yet was known would know—
    Oh, whither hasten ye, that thus ye press,
    With such swift feet life's green and pleasant path, _10
    Seeking, alike from happiness and woe,
    A refuge in the cavern of gray death?
    O heart, and mind, and thoughts! what thing do you
    Hope to inherit in the grave below?

    NOTE:
    _1 grave Ollier manuscript;
    dead Harvard manuscript, 1823, editions 1824, 1839.
    _5 pale Expectation Ollier manuscript;
    anticipation Harvard manuscript, 1823, editions 1824, 1839.
    _7 must Harvard manuscript, 1823; mayst 1824; mayest editions 1839.
    _8 all that Harvard manuscript, 1823; that which editions 1824, 1839.
    would Harvard manuscript, 1823; wouldst editions 1839.

    ***


    LINES TO A REVIEWER.



    [Published by Leigh Hunt, "The Literary Pocket-Book", 1823. These
    lines, and the "Sonnet" immediately preceding, are signed Sigma in the
    "Literary Pocket-Book".]

    Alas, good friend, what profit can you see
    In hating such a hateless thing as me?
    There is no sport in hate where all the rage
    Is on one side: in vain would you assuage
    Your frowns upon an unresisting smile, _5
    In which not even contempt lurks to beguile
    Your heart, by some faint sympathy of hate.
    Oh, conquer what you cannot satiate!
    For to your passion I am far more coy
    Than ever yet was coldest maid or boy _10
    In winter noon. Of your antipathy
    If I am the Narcissus, you are free
    To pine into a sound with hating me.

    NOTE:
    _3 where editions 1824, 1839; when 1823.

    ***


    FRAGMENT OF A SATIRE ON SATIRE.



    [Published by Edward Dowden, "Correspondence of Robert Southey and
    Caroline Bowles", 1880.]

    If gibbets, axes, confiscations, chains,
    And racks of subtle torture, if the pains
    Of shame, of fiery Hell's tempestuous wave,
    Seen through the caverns of the shadowy grave,
    Hurling the damned into the murky air _5
    While the meek blest sit smiling; if Despair
    And Hate, the rapid bloodhounds with which Terror
    Hunts through the world the homeless steps of Error,
    Are the true secrets of the commonweal
    To make men wise and just;... _10
    And not the sophisms of revenge and fear,
    Bloodier than is revenge...
    Then send the priests to every hearth and home
    To preach the burning wrath which is to come,
    In words like flakes of sulphur, such as thaw _15
    The frozen tears...
    If Satire's scourge could wake the slumbering hounds
    Of Conscience, or erase the deeper wounds,
    The leprous scars of callous Infamy;
    If it could make the present not to be, _20
    Or charm the dark past never to have been,
    Or turn regret to hope; who that has seen
    What Southey is and was, would not exclaim,
    'Lash on!' ... be the keen verse dipped in flame;
    Follow his flight with winged words, and urge _25
    The strokes of the inexorable scourge
    Until the heart be naked, till his soul
    See the contagion's spots ... foul;
    And from the mirror of Truth's sunlike shield,
    From which his Parthian arrow... _30
    Flash on his sight the spectres of the past,
    Until his mind's eye paint thereon—
    Let scorn like ... yawn below,
    And rain on him like flakes of fiery snow.
    This cannot be, it ought not, evil still— _35
    Suffering makes suffering, ill must follow ill.
    Rough words beget sad thoughts, ... and, beside,
    Men take a sullen and a stupid pride
    In being all they hate in others' shame,
    By a perverse antipathy of fame. _40
    'Tis not worth while to prove, as I could, how
    From the sweet fountains of our Nature flow
    These bitter waters; I will only say,
    If any friend would take Southey some day,
    And tell him, in a country walk alone, _45
    Softening harsh words with friendship's gentle tone,
    How incorrect his public conduct is,
    And what men think of it, 'twere not amiss.
    Far better than to make innocent ink—

    ***


    GOOD-NIGHT.



    [Published by Leigh Hunt over the signature Sigma, "The Literary
    Pocket-Book", 1822. It is included in the Harvard manuscript book, and
    there is a transcript by Shelley in a copy of "The Literary
    Pocket-Book", 1819, presented by him to Miss Sophia Stacey, December
    29, 1820. (See "Love's Philosophy" and "Time Long Past".) Our text is
    that of the editio princeps, 1822, with which the Harvard manuscript
    and "Posthumous Poems", 1824, agree. The variants of the Stacey
    manuscript, 1820, are given in the footnotes.]

    1.
    Good-night? ah! no; the hour is ill
    Which severs those it should unite;
    Let us remain together still,
    Then it will be GOOD night.

    2.
    How can I call the lone night good, _5
    Though thy sweet wishes wing its flight?
    Be it not said, thought, understood—
    Then it will be—GOOD night.

    3.
    To hearts which near each other move
    From evening close to morning light, _10
    The night is good; because, my love,
    They never SAY good-night.

    NOTES:
    _1 Good-night? no, love! the night is ill Stacey manuscript.
    _5 How were the night without thee good Stacey manuscript.
    _9 The hearts that on each other beat Stacey manuscript.
    _11 Have nights as good as they are sweet Stacey manuscript.
    _12 But never SAY good night Stacey manuscript.

    ***


    BUONA NOTTE.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Angler in Wales, or Days and Nights of
    Sportsmen", 1834. The text is revised by Rossetti from the Boscombe
    manuscript.]

    1.
    'Buona notte, buona notte!'—Come mai
    La notte sara buona senza te?
    Non dirmi buona notte,—che tu sai,
    La notte sa star buona da per se.

    2.
    Solinga, scura, cupa, senza speme, _5
    La notte quando Lilla m'abbandona;
    Pei cuori chi si batton insieme
    Ogni notte, senza dirla, sara buona.

    3.
    Come male buona notte ci suona
    Con sospiri e parole interrotte!— _10
    Il modo di aver la notte buona
    E mai non di dir la buona notte.

    NOTES:
    _2 sara]sia 1834.
    _4 buona]bene 1834.
    _9 Come]Quanto 1834.

    ***


    ORPHEUS.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862; revised and
    enlarged by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    A:
    Not far from hence. From yonder pointed hill,
    Crowned with a ring of oaks, you may behold
    A dark and barren field, through which there flows,
    Sluggish and black, a deep but narrow stream,
    Which the wind ripples not, and the fair moon _5
    Gazes in vain, and finds no mirror there.
    Follow the herbless banks of that strange brook
    Until you pause beside a darksome pond,
    The fountain of this rivulet, whose gush
    Cannot be seen, hid by a rayless night _10
    That lives beneath the overhanging rock
    That shades the pool—an endless spring of gloom,
    Upon whose edge hovers the tender light,
    Trembling to mingle with its paramour,—
    But, as Syrinx fled Pan, so night flies day, _15
    Or, with most sullen and regardless hate,
    Refuses stern her heaven-born embrace.
    On one side of this jagged and shapeless hill
    There is a cave, from which there eddies up
    A pale mist, like aereal gossamer, _20
    Whose breath destroys all life—awhile it veils
    The rock—then, scattered by the wind, it flies
    Along the stream, or lingers on the clefts,
    Killing the sleepy worms, if aught bide there.
    Upon the beetling edge of that dark rock _25
    There stands a group of cypresses; not such
    As, with a graceful spire and stirring life,
    Pierce the pure heaven of your native vale,
    Whose branches the air plays among, but not
    Disturbs, fearing to spoil their solemn grace; _30
    But blasted and all wearily they stand,
    One to another clinging; their weak boughs
    Sigh as the wind buffets them, and they shake
    Beneath its blasts—a weatherbeaten crew!


    CHORUS
    :
    What wondrous sound is that, mournful and faint, _35
    But more melodious than the murmuring wind
    Which through the columns of a temple glides?


    A
    :
    It is the wandering voice of Orpheus' lyre,
    Borne by the winds, who sigh that their rude king
    Hurries them fast from these air-feeding notes; _40
    But in their speed they bear along with them
    The waning sound, scattering it like dew
    Upon the startled sense.


    CHORUS
    :
    Does he still sing?
    Methought he rashly cast away his harp
    When he had lost Eurydice.


    A
    :
    Ah, no! _45
    Awhile he paused. As a poor hunted stag
    A moment shudders on the fearful brink
    Of a swift stream—the cruel hounds press on
    With deafening yell, the arrows glance and wound,—
    He plunges in: so Orpheus, seized and torn _50
    By the sharp fangs of an insatiate grief,
    Maenad-like waved his lyre in the bright air,
    And wildly shrieked 'Where she is, it is dark!'
    And then he struck from forth the strings a sound
    Of deep and fearful melody. Alas! _55
    In times long past, when fair Eurydice
    With her bright eyes sat listening by his side,
    He gently sang of high and heavenly themes.
    As in a brook, fretted with little waves
    By the light airs of spring—each riplet makes _60
    A many-sided mirror for the sun,
    While it flows musically through green banks,
    Ceaseless and pauseless, ever clear and fresh,
    So flowed his song, reflecting the deep joy
    And tender love that fed those sweetest notes, _65
    The heavenly offspring of ambrosial food.
    But that is past. Returning from drear Hell,
    He chose a lonely seat of unhewn stone,
    Blackened with lichens, on a herbless plain.
    Then from the deep and overflowing spring _70
    Of his eternal ever-moving grief
    There rose to Heaven a sound of angry song.
    'Tis as a mighty cataract that parts
    Two sister rocks with waters swift and strong, _75
    And casts itself with horrid roar and din
    Adown a steep; from a perennial source
    It ever flows and falls, and breaks the air
    With loud and fierce, but most harmonious roar,
    And as it falls casts up a vaporous spray
    Which the sun clothes in hues of Iris light. _80
    Thus the tempestuous torrent of his grief
    Is clothed in sweetest sounds and varying words
    Of poesy. Unlike all human works,
    It never slackens, and through every change
    Wisdom and beauty and the power divine _85
    Of mighty poesy together dwell,
    Mingling in sweet accord. As I have seen
    A fierce south blast tear through the darkened sky,
    Driving along a rack of winged clouds,
    Which may not pause, but ever hurry on, _90
    As their wild shepherd wills them, while the stars,
    Twinkling and dim, peep from between the plumes.
    Anon the sky is cleared, and the high dome
    Of serene Heaven, starred with fiery flowers,
    Shuts in the shaken earth; or the still moon _95
    Swiftly, yet gracefully, begins her walk,
    Rising all bright behind the eastern hills.
    I talk of moon, and wind, and stars, and not
    Of song; but, would I echo his high song,
    Nature must lend me words ne'er used before, _100
    Or I must borrow from her perfect works,
    To picture forth his perfect attributes.
    He does no longer sit upon his throne
    Of rock upon a desert herbless plain,
    For the evergreen and knotted ilexes, _105
    And cypresses that seldom wave their boughs,
    And sea-green olives with their grateful fruit,
    And elms dragging along the twisted vines,
    Which drop their berries as they follow fast,
    And blackthorn bushes with their infant race _110
    Of blushing rose-blooms; beeches, to lovers dear,
    And weeping willow trees; all swift or slow,
    As their huge boughs or lighter dress permit,
    Have circled in his throne, and Earth herself
    Has sent from her maternal breast a growth _115
    Of starlike flowers and herbs of odour sweet,
    To pave the temple that his poesy
    Has framed, while near his feet grim lions couch,
    And kids, fearless from love, creep near his lair.
    Even the blind worms seem to feel the sound. _120
    The birds are silent, hanging down their heads,
    Perched on the lowest branches of the trees;
    Not even the nightingale intrudes a note
    In rivalry, but all entranced she listens.


    NOTES:
    _16, _17, _24 1870 only.
    _45-_55 Ah, no!... melody 1870 only.
    _66 1870 only.
    _112 trees 1870; too 1862.
    _113 huge 1870; long 1862.
    _116 starlike 1870; starry 1862. odour 1862; odours 1870.

    ***


    FIORDISPINA.



    [Published in part (lines 11-30) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
    1824; in full (from the Boscombe manuscript) by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of
    Shelley", 1862.]

    The season was the childhood of sweet June,
    Whose sunny hours from morning until noon
    Went creeping through the day with silent feet,
    Each with its load of pleasure; slow yet sweet;
    Like the long years of blest Eternity _5
    Never to be developed. Joy to thee,
    Fiordispina and thy Cosimo,
    For thou the wonders of the depth canst know
    Of this unfathomable flood of hours,
    Sparkling beneath the heaven which embowers— _10

    ...

    They were two cousins, almost like to twins,
    Except that from the catalogue of sins
    Nature had rased their love—which could not be
    But by dissevering their nativity.
    And so they grew together like two flowers _15
    Upon one stem, which the same beams and showers
    Lull or awaken in their purple prime,
    Which the same hand will gather—the same clime
    Shake with decay. This fair day smiles to see
    All those who love—and who e'er loved like thee, _20
    Fiordispina? Scarcely Cosimo,
    Within whose bosom and whose brain now glow
    The ardours of a vision which obscure
    The very idol of its portraiture.
    He faints, dissolved into a sea of love; _25
    But thou art as a planet sphered above;
    But thou art Love itself—ruling the motion
    Of his subjected spirit: such emotion
    Must end in sin and sorrow, if sweet May
    Had not brought forth this morn—your wedding-day. _30

    ...

    'Lie there; sleep awhile in your own dew,
    Ye faint-eyed children of the ... Hours,'
    Fiordispina said, and threw the flowers
    Which she had from the breathing—

    ...

    A table near of polished porphyry. _35
    They seemed to wear a beauty from the eye
    That looked on them—a fragrance from the touch
    Whose warmth ... checked their life; a light such
    As sleepers wear, lulled by the voice they love, which did reprove _40
    The childish pity that she felt for them,
    And a ... remorse that from their stem
    She had divided such fair shapes ... made
    A feeling in the ... which was a shade
    Of gentle beauty on the flowers: there lay _45
    All gems that make the earth's dark bosom gay.
    ... rods of myrtle-buds and lemon-blooms,
    And that leaf tinted lightly which assumes
    The livery of unremembered snow—
    Violets whose eyes have drunk— _50

    ...

    Fiordispina and her nurse are now
    Upon the steps of the high portico,
    Under the withered arm of Media
    She flings her glowing arm

    ...

    ... step by step and stair by stair, _55
    That withered woman, gray and white and brown—
    More like a trunk by lichens overgrown
    Than anything which once could have been human.
    And ever as she goes the palsied woman

    ...

    'How slow and painfully you seem to walk, _60
    Poor Media! you tire yourself with talk.'
    'And well it may,
    Fiordispina, dearest—well-a-day!
    You are hastening to a marriage-bed;
    I to the grave!'—'And if my love were dead, _65
    Unless my heart deceives me, I would lie
    Beside him in my shroud as willingly
    As now in the gay night-dress Lilla wrought.'
    'Fie, child! Let that unseasonable thought
    Not be remembered till it snows in June; _70
    Such fancies are a music out of tune
    With the sweet dance your heart must keep to-night.
    What! would you take all beauty and delight
    Back to the Paradise from which you sprung,
    And leave to grosser mortals?— _75
    And say, sweet lamb, would you not learn the sweet
    And subtle mystery by which spirits meet?
    Who knows whether the loving game is played,
    When, once of mortal [vesture] disarrayed,
    The naked soul goes wandering here and there _80
    Through the wide deserts of Elysian air?
    The violet dies not till it'—

    NOTES:
    _11 to 1824; two editions 1839.
    _20 e'er 1862; ever editions 1824, 1839.
    _25 sea edition 1862; sense editions 1824, 1839.

    ***


    TIME LONG PAST.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.
    This is one of three poems (cf. "Love's Philosophy" and "Good-Night")
    transcribed by Shelley in a copy of Leigh Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book"
    for 1819 presented by him to Miss Sophia Stacey, December 29, 1820.]

    1.
    Like the ghost of a dear friend dead
    Is Time long past.
    A tone which is now forever fled,
    A hope which is now forever past,
    A love so sweet it could not last, _5
    Was Time long past.

    2.
    There were sweet dreams in the night
    Of Time long past:
    And, was it sadness or delight,
    Each day a shadow onward cast _10
    Which made us wish it yet might last—
    That Time long past.

    3.
    There is regret, almost remorse,
    For Time long past.
    'Tis like a child's beloved corse _15
    A father watches, till at last
    Beauty is like remembrance, cast
    From Time long past.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THE DESERTS OF DIM SLEEP.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    I went into the deserts of dim sleep—
    That world which, like an unknown wilderness,
    Bounds this with its recesses wide and deep—

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'THE VIEWLESS AND INVISIBLE CONSEQUENCE'.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    The viewless and invisible Consequence
    Watches thy goings-out, and comings-in,
    And...hovers o'er thy guilty sleep,
    Unveiling every new-born deed, and thoughts
    More ghastly than those deeds— _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: A SERPENT-FACE.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    His face was like a snake's—wrinkled and loose
    And withered—

    ***


    FRAGMENT: DEATH IN LIFE.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    My head is heavy, my limbs are weary,
    And it is not life that makes me move.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'SUCH HOPE, AS IS THE SICK DESPAIR OF GOOD'.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Such hope, as is the sick despair of good,
    Such fear, as is the certainty of ill,
    Such doubt, as is pale Expectation's food
    Turned while she tastes to poison, when the will
    Is powerless, and the spirit... _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'ALAS! THIS IS NOT WHAT I THOUGHT LIFE WAS'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. This
    fragment is joined by Forman with that immediately preceding.]

    Alas! this is not what I thought life was.
    I knew that there were crimes and evil men,
    Misery and hate; nor did I hope to pass
    Untouched by suffering, through the rugged glen.
    In mine own heart I saw as in a glass _5
    The hearts of others ... And when
    I went among my kind, with triple brass
    Of calm endurance my weak breast I armed,
    To bear scorn, fear, and hate, a woful mass!

    ***


    FRAGMENT: MILTON'S SPIRIT.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    I dreamed that Milton's spirit rose, and took
    From life's green tree his Uranian lute;
    And from his touch sweet thunder flowed, and shook
    All human things built in contempt of man,—
    And sanguine thrones and impious altars quaked, _5
    Prisons and citadels...

    NOTE:
    _2 lute Uranian cj. A.C. Bradley.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'UNRISEN SPLENDOUR OF THE BRIGHTEST SUN'.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Unrisen splendour of the brightest sun,
    To rise upon our darkness, if the star
    Now beckoning thee out of thy misty throne
    Could thaw the clouds which wage an obscure war
    With thy young brightness! _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: PATER OMNIPOTENS.



    [Edited from manuscript Shelley E 4 in the Bodleian Library, and
    published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination" etc., Oxford, Clarendon
    Press, 1903. Here placed conjecturally amongst the compositions of
    1820, but of uncertain date, and belonging possibly to 1819 or a still
    earlier year.]

    Serene in his unconquerable might
    Endued[,] the Almighty King, his steadfast throne
    Encompassed unapproachably with power
    And darkness and deep solitude an awe
    Stood like a black cloud on some aery cliff _5
    Embosoming its lightning—in his sight
    Unnumbered glorious spirits trembling stood
    Like slaves before their Lord—prostrate around
    Heaven's multitudes hymned everlasting praise.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: TO THE MIND OF MAN.



    [Edited, published and here placed as the preceding.]

    Thou living light that in thy rainbow hues
    Clothest this naked world; and over Sea
    And Earth and air, and all the shapes that be
    In peopled darkness of this wondrous world
    The Spirit of thy glory dost diffuse _5
    ... truth ... thou Vital Flame
    Mysterious thought that in this mortal frame
    Of things, with unextinguished lustre burnest
    Now pale and faint now high to Heaven upcurled
    That eer as thou dost languish still returnest _10
    And ever
    Before the ... before the Pyramids

    So soon as from the Earth formless and rude
    One living step had chased drear Solitude
    Thou wert, Thought; thy brightness charmed the lids _15
    Of the vast snake Eternity, who kept
    The tree of good and evil.—

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1820, BY MRS. SHELLEY.

    We spent the latter part of the year 1819 in Florence, where Shelley passed several hours daily in the Gallery, and made various notes on its ancient works of art. His thoughts were a good deal taken up also by the project of a steamboat, undertaken by a friend, an engineer, to ply between Leghorn and Marseilles, for which he supplied a sum of money. This was a sort of plan to delight Shelley, and he was greatly disappointed when it was thrown aside.

    There was something in Florence that disagreed excessively with his health, and he suffered far more pain than usual; so much so that we left it sooner than we intended, and removed to Pisa, where we had some friends, and, above all, where we could consult the celebrated Vacca as to the cause of Shelley's sufferings. He, like every other medical man, could only guess at that, and gave little hope of immediate relief; he enjoined him to abstain from all physicians and medicine, and to leave his complaint to Nature. As he had vainly consulted medical men of the highest repute in England, he was easily persuaded to adopt this advice. Pain and ill-health followed him to the end; but the residence at Pisa agreed with him better than any other, and there in consequence we remained.

    In the Spring we spent a week or two near Leghorn, borrowing the house of some friends who were absent on a journey to England. It was on a beautiful summer evening, while wandering among the lanes whose myrtle-hedges were the bowers of the fire-flies, that we heard the carolling of the skylark which inspired one of the most beautiful of his poems. He addressed the letter to Mrs. Gisborne from this house, which was hers: he had made his study of the workshop of her son, who was an engineer. Mrs. Gisborne had been a friend of my father in her younger days. She was a lady of great accomplishments, and charming from her frank and affectionate nature. She had the most intense love of knowledge, a delicate and trembling sensibility, and preserved freshness of mind after a life of considerable adversity. As a favourite friend of my father, we had sought her with eagerness; and the most open and cordial friendship was established between us.

    Our stay at the Baths of San Giuliano was shortened by an accident. At the foot of our garden ran the canal that communicated between the Serchio and the Arno. The Serchio overflowed its banks, and, breaking its bounds, this canal also overflowed; all this part of the country is below the level of its rivers, and the consequence was that it was speedily flooded. The rising waters filled the Square of the Baths, in the lower part of which our house was situated. The canal overflowed in the garden behind; the rising waters on either side at last burst open the doors, and, meeting in the house, rose to the height of six feet. It was a picturesque sight at night to see the peasants driving the cattle from the plains below to the hills above the Baths. A fire was kept up to guide them across the ford; and the forms of the men and the animals showed in dark relief against the red glare of the flame, which was reflected again in the waters that filled the Square.

    We then removed to Pisa, and took up our abode there for the winter. The extreme mildness of the climate suited Shelley, and his solitude was enlivened by an intercourse with several intimate friends. Chance cast us strangely enough on this quiet half-unpeopled town; but its very peace suited Shelley. Its river, the near mountains, and not distant sea, added to its attractions, and were the objects of many delightful excursions. We feared the south of Italy, and a hotter climate, on account of our child; our former bereavement inspiring us with terror. We seemed to take root here, and moved little afterwards; often, indeed, entertaining projects for visiting other parts of Italy, but still delaying. But for our fears on account of our child, I believe we should have wandered over the world, both being passionately fond of travelling. But human life, besides its great unalterable necessities, is ruled by a thousand lilliputian ties that shackle at the time, although it is difficult to account afterwards for their influence over our destiny.

    ***


    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1821.




    DIRGE FOR THE YEAR.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and dated
    January 1, 1821.]

    1.
    Orphan Hours, the Year is dead,
    Come and sigh, come and weep!
    Merry Hours, smile instead,
    For the Year is but asleep.
    See, it smiles as it is sleeping, _5
    Mocking your untimely weeping.

    2.
    As an earthquake rocks a corse
    In its coffin in the clay,
    So White Winter, that rough nurse,
    Rocks the death-cold Year to-day; _10
    Solemn Hours! wail aloud
    For your mother in her shroud.

    3.
    As the wild air stirs and sways
    The tree-swung cradle of a child,
    So the breath of these rude days _15
    Rocks the Year:—be calm and mild,
    Trembling Hours, she will arise
    With new love within her eyes.

    4.
    January gray is here,
    Like a sexton by her grave; _20
    February bears the bier,
    March with grief doth howl and rave,
    And April weeps—but, O ye Hours!
    Follow with May's fairest flowers.

    ***


    TO NIGHT.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    There is a transcript in the Harvard manuscript book.]

    1.
    Swiftly walk o'er the western wave,
    Spirit of Night!
    Out of the misty eastern cave,
    Where, all the long and lone daylight,
    Thou wovest dreams of joy and fear, _5
    'Which make thee terrible and dear,—
    Swift be thy flight!

    2.
    Wrap thy form in a mantle gray,
    Star-inwrought!
    Blind with thine hair the eyes of Day; _10
    Kiss her until she be wearied out,
    Then wander o'er city, and sea, and land,
    Touching all with thine opiate wand—
    Come, long-sought!

    3.
    When I arose and saw the dawn, _15
    I sighed for thee;
    When light rode high, and the dew was gone,
    And noon lay heavy on flower and tree,
    And the weary Day turned to his rest,
    Lingering like an unloved guest, I sighed for thee. _20

    4.
    Thy brother Death came, and cried,
    Wouldst thou me?
    Thy sweet child Sleep, the filmy-eyed,
    Murmured like a noontide bee, _25
    Shall I nestle near thy side?
    Wouldst thou me?—And I replied,
    No, not thee!

    5.
    Death will come when thou art dead,
    Soon, too soon— _30
    Sleep will come when thou art fled;
    Of neither would I ask the boon
    I ask of thee, beloved Night—
    Swift be thine approaching flight,
    Come soon, soon! _35

    NOTE:
    _1 o'er Harvard manuscript; over editions 1824, 1839.

    ***


    TIME.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    Unfathomable Sea! whose waves are years,
    Ocean of Time, whose waters of deep woe
    Are brackish with the salt of human tears!
    Thou shoreless flood, which in thy ebb and flow
    Claspest the limits of mortality, _5
    And sick of prey, yet howling on for more,
    Vomitest thy wrecks on its inhospitable shore;
    Treacherous in calm, and terrible in storm,
    Who shall put forth on thee,
    Unfathomable Sea? _10

    ***


    LINES.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    Far, far away, O ye
    Halcyons of Memory,
    Seek some far calmer nest
    Than this abandoned breast!
    No news of your false spring _5
    To my heart's winter bring,
    Once having gone, in vain
    Ye come again.

    2.
    Vultures, who build your bowers
    High in the Future's towers, _10
    Withered hopes on hopes are spread!
    Dying joys, choked by the dead,
    Will serve your beaks for prey
    Many a day.

    ***


    FROM THE ARABIC: AN IMITATION.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is an
    intermediate draft amongst the Bodleian manuscripts. See Locock,
    "Examination", etc., 1903, page 13.]

    1.
    My faint spirit was sitting in the light
    Of thy looks, my love;
    It panted for thee like the hind at noon
    For the brooks, my love.
    Thy barb whose hoofs outspeed the tempest's flight _5
    Bore thee far from me;
    My heart, for my weak feet were weary soon,
    Did companion thee.

    2.
    Ah! fleeter far than fleetest storm or steed
    Or the death they bear, _10
    The heart which tender thought clothes like a dove
    With the wings of care;
    In the battle, in the darkness, in the need,
    Shall mine cling to thee,
    Nor claim one smile for all the comfort, love, _15
    It may bring to thee.

    NOTES:
    _3 hoofs]feet B.
    _7 were]grew B.
    _9 Ah!]O B.

    ***


    TO EMILIA VIVIANI.



    [Published, (1) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (2, 1) by
    Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862; (2, 2 and 3) by H. Buxton
    Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1876.]

    1.
    Madonna, wherefore hast thou sent to me
    Sweet-basil and mignonette?
    Embleming love and health, which never yet
    In the same wreath might be.
    Alas, and they are wet! _5
    Is it with thy kisses or thy tears?
    For never rain or dew
    Such fragrance drew
    From plant or flower—the very doubt endears
    My sadness ever new, _10
    The sighs I breathe, the tears I shed for thee.

    2.
    Send the stars light, but send not love to me,
    In whom love ever made
    Health like a heap of embers soon to fade—

    ***


    THE FUGITIVES.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems". 1824.]

    1.
    The waters are flashing,
    The white hail is dashing,
    The lightnings are glancing,
    The hoar-spray is dancing—
    Away! _5

    The whirlwind is rolling,
    The thunder is tolling,
    The forest is swinging,
    The minster bells ringing—
    Come away! _10

    The Earth is like Ocean,
    Wreck-strewn and in motion:
    Bird, beast, man and worm
    Have crept out of the storm—
    Come away! _15

    2.
    'Our boat has one sail
    And the helmsman is pale;—
    A bold pilot I trow,
    Who should follow us now,'—
    Shouted he— _20

    And she cried: 'Ply the oar!
    Put off gaily from shore!'—
    As she spoke, bolts of death
    Mixed with hail, specked their path
    O'er the sea. _25

    And from isle, tower and rock,
    The blue beacon-cloud broke,
    And though dumb in the blast,
    The red cannon flashed fast
    From the lee. _30

    3.
    And 'Fear'st thou?' and 'Fear'st thou?'
    And Seest thou?' and 'Hear'st thou?'
    And 'Drive we not free
    O'er the terrible sea,
    I and thou?' _35

    One boat-cloak did cover
    The loved and the lover—
    Their blood beats one measure,
    They murmur proud pleasure
    Soft and low;— _40

    While around the lashed Ocean,
    Like mountains in motion,
    Is withdrawn and uplifted,
    Sunk, shattered and shifted
    To and fro. _45

    4.
    In the court of the fortress
    Beside the pale portress,
    Like a bloodhound well beaten
    The bridegroom stands, eaten
    By shame; _50

    On the topmost watch-turret,
    As a death-boding spirit
    Stands the gray tyrant father,
    To his voice the mad weather
    Seems tame; _55

    And with curses as wild
    As e'er clung to child,
    He devotes to the blast,
    The best, loveliest and last
    Of his name! _60

    NOTES:
    _28 And though]Though editions 1839.
    _57 clung]cling editions 1839.

    ***


    TO —.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    Music, when soft voices die,
    Vibrates in the memory—
    Odours, when sweet violets sicken,
    Live within the sense they quicken.

    Rose leaves, when the rose is dead, _5
    Are heaped for the beloved's bed;
    And so thy thoughts, when thou art gone,
    Love itself shall slumber on.

    ***


    SONG.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    There is a transcript in the Harvard manuscript book.]

    1.
    Rarely, rarely, comest thou,
    Spirit of Delight!
    Wherefore hast thou left me now
    Many a day and night?
    Many a weary night and day _5
    'Tis since thou art fled away.

    2.
    How shall ever one like me
    Win thee back again?
    With the joyous and the free
    Thou wilt scoff at pain. _10
    Spirit false! thou hast forgot
    All but those who need thee not.

    3.
    As a lizard with the shade
    Of a trembling leaf,
    Thou with sorrow art dismayed; _15
    Even the sighs of grief
    Reproach thee, that thou art not near,
    And reproach thou wilt not hear.

    4.
    Let me set my mournful ditty
    To a merry measure; _20
    Thou wilt never come for pity,
    Thou wilt come for pleasure;
    Pity then will cut away
    Those cruel wings, and thou wilt stay.

    5.
    I love all that thou lovest, _25
    Spirit of Delight!
    The fresh Earth in new leaves dressed,
    And the starry night;
    Autumn evening, and the morn
    When the golden mists are born. _30

    6.
    I love snow, and all the forms
    Of the radiant frost;
    I love waves, and winds, and storms,
    Everything almost
    Which is Nature's, and may be _35
    Untainted by man's misery.

    7.
    I love tranquil solitude,
    And such society
    As is quiet, wise, and good
    Between thee and me _40
    What difference? but thou dost possess
    The things I seek, not love them less.

    8.
    I love Love—though he has wings,
    And like light can flee,
    But above all other things, _45
    Spirit, I love thee—
    Thou art love and life! Oh, come,
    Make once more my heart thy home.

    ***


    MUTABILITY.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    There is a fair draft amongst the Boscombe manuscripts.]

    1.
    The flower that smiles to-day
    To-morrow dies;
    All that we wish to stay
    Tempts and then flies.
    What is this world's delight? _5
    Lightning that mocks the night,
    Brief even as bright.

    2.
    Virtue, how frail it is!
    Friendship how rare!
    Love, how it sells poor bliss _10
    For proud despair!
    But we, though soon they fall,
    Survive their joy, and all
    Which ours we call.

    3.
    Whilst skies are blue and bright, _15
    Whilst flowers are gay,
    Whilst eyes that change ere night
    Make glad the day;
    Whilst yet the calm hours creep,
    Dream thou—and from thy sleep _20
    Then wake to weep.

    NOTES:
    _9 how Boscombe manuscript; too editions 1824, 1839.
    _12 though soon they fall]though soon we or so soon they cj. Rossetti.

    ***


    LINES WRITTEN ON HEARING THE NEWS OF THE DEATH OF NAPOLEON.



    [Published with "Hellas", 1821.]

    What! alive and so bold, O Earth?
    Art thou not overbold?
    What! leapest thou forth as of old
    In the light of thy morning mirth,
    The last of the flock of the starry fold? _5
    Ha! leapest thou forth as of old?
    Are not the limbs still when the ghost is fled,
    And canst thou move, Napoleon being dead?

    How! is not thy quick heart cold?
    What spark is alive on thy hearth? _10
    How! is not HIS death-knell knolled?
    And livest THOU still, Mother Earth?
    Thou wert warming thy fingers old
    O'er the embers covered and cold
    Of that most fiery spirit, when it fled— _15
    What, Mother, do you laugh now he is dead?

    'Who has known me of old,' replied Earth,
    'Or who has my story told?
    It is thou who art overbold.'
    And the lightning of scorn laughed forth _20
    As she sung, 'To my bosom I fold
    All my sons when their knell is knolled,
    And so with living motion all are fed,
    And the quick spring like weeds out of the dead.

    'Still alive and still bold,' shouted Earth, _25
    'I grow bolder and still more bold.
    The dead fill me ten thousandfold
    Fuller of speed, and splendour, and mirth.
    I was cloudy, and sullen, and cold,
    Like a frozen chaos uprolled, _30
    Till by the spirit of the mighty dead
    My heart grew warm. I feed on whom I fed.

    'Ay, alive and still bold.' muttered Earth,
    'Napoleon's fierce spirit rolled,
    In terror and blood and gold, _35
    A torrent of ruin to death from his birth.
    Leave the millions who follow to mould
    The metal before it be cold;
    And weave into his shame, which like the dead
    Shrouds me, the hopes that from his glory fled.' _40

    ***


    SONNET: POLITICAL GREATNESS.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a
    transcript, headed "Sonnet to the Republic of Benevento", in the
    Harvard manuscript book.]

    Nor happiness, nor majesty, nor fame,
    Nor peace, nor strength, nor skill in arms or arts,
    Shepherd those herds whom tyranny makes tame;
    Verse echoes not one beating of their hearts,
    History is but the shadow of their shame, _5
    Art veils her glass, or from the pageant starts
    As to oblivion their blind millions fleet,
    Staining that Heaven with obscene imagery
    Of their own likeness. What are numbers knit
    By force or custom? Man who man would be, _10
    Must rule the empire of himself; in it
    Must be supreme, establishing his throne
    On vanquished will, quelling the anarchy
    Of hopes and fears, being himself alone.

    ***


    THE AZIOLA.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "The Keepsake", 1829.]

    1.
    'Do you not hear the Aziola cry?
    Methinks she must be nigh,'
    Said Mary, as we sate
    In dusk, ere stars were lit, or candles brought;
    And I, who thought _5
    This Aziola was some tedious woman,
    Asked, 'Who is Aziola?' How elate
    I felt to know that it was nothing human,
    No mockery of myself to fear or hate:
    And Mary saw my soul, _10
    And laughed, and said, 'Disquiet yourself not;
    'Tis nothing but a little downy owl.'

    2.
    Sad Aziola! many an eventide
    Thy music I had heard
    By wood and stream, meadow and mountain-side, _15
    And fields and marshes wide,—
    Such as nor voice, nor lute, nor wind, nor bird,
    The soul ever stirred;
    Unlike and far sweeter than them all.
    Sad Aziola! from that moment I _20
    Loved thee and thy sad cry.

    NOTES:
    _4 ere stars]ere the stars editions 1839.
    _9 or]and editions 1839.
    _19 them]they editions 1839.

    ***


    A LAMENT.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    O world! O life! O time!
    On whose last steps I climb,
    Trembling at that where I had stood before;
    When will return the glory of your prime?
    No more—Oh, never more! _5

    2.
    Out of the day and night
    A joy has taken flight;
    Fresh spring, and summer, and winter hoar,
    Move my faint heart with grief, but with delight
    No more—Oh, never more! _10

    ***


    REMEMBRANCE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, where it is
    entitled "A Lament". Three manuscript copies are extant: The Trelawny
    manuscript ("Remembrance"), the Harvard manuscript ("Song") and the
    Houghton manuscript—the last written by Shelley on a flyleaf of a copy
    of "Adonais".]

    1.
    Swifter far than summer's flight—
    Swifter far than youth's delight—
    Swifter far than happy night,
    Art thou come and gone—
    As the earth when leaves are dead, _5
    As the night when sleep is sped,
    As the heart when joy is fled,
    I am left lone, alone.

    2.
    The swallow summer comes again—
    The owlet night resumes her reign— _10
    But the wild-swan youth is fain
    To fly with thee, false as thou.—
    My heart each day desires the morrow;
    Sleep itself is turned to sorrow;
    Vainly would my winter borrow _15
    Sunny leaves from any bough.

    3.
    Lilies for a bridal bed—
    Roses for a matron's head—
    Violets for a maiden dead—
    Pansies let MY flowers be: _20
    On the living grave I bear
    Scatter them without a tear—
    Let no friend, however dear,
    Waste one hope, one fear for me.

    NOTES:
    _5-_7 So editions 1824, 1839, Trelawny manuscript, Harvard manuscript;
    As the wood when leaves are shed,
    As the night when sleep is fled,
    As the heart when joy is dead Houghton manuscript.
    _13 So editions 1824, 1839, Harvard manuscript, Houghton manuscript.
    My heart to-day desires to-morrow Trelawny manuscript.
    _20 So editions 1824, 1839, Harvard manuscript, Houghton manuscript.
    Sadder flowers find for me Trelawny manuscript.
    _24 one hope, one fear]a hope, a fear Trelawny manuscript.

    ***


    TO EDWARD WILLIAMS.



    [Published in Ascham's edition of the "Poems", 1834.
    There is a copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]

    1.
    The serpent is shut out from Paradise.
    The wounded deer must seek the herb no more
    In which its heart-cure lies:
    The widowed dove must cease to haunt a bower
    Like that from which its mate with feigned sighs _5
    Fled in the April hour.
    I too must seldom seek again
    Near happy friends a mitigated pain.

    2.
    Of hatred I am proud,—with scorn content;
    Indifference, that once hurt me, now is grown _10
    Itself indifferent;
    But, not to speak of love, pity alone
    Can break a spirit already more than bent.
    The miserable one
    Turns the mind's poison into food,— _15
    Its medicine is tears,—its evil good.

    3.
    Therefore, if now I see you seldomer,
    Dear friends, dear FRIEND! know that I only fly
    Your looks, because they stir
    Griefs that should sleep, and hopes that cannot die: _20
    The very comfort that they minister
    I scarce can bear, yet I,
    So deeply is the arrow gone,
    Should quickly perish if it were withdrawn.

    4.
    When I return to my cold home, you ask _25
    Why I am not as I have ever been.
    YOU spoil me for the task
    Of acting a forced part in life's dull scene,—
    Of wearing on my brow the idle mask
    Of author, great or mean, _30
    In the world's carnival. I sought
    Peace thus, and but in you I found it not.

    5.
    Full half an hour, to-day, I tried my lot
    With various flowers, and every one still said,
    'She loves me—loves me not.' _35
    And if this meant a vision long since fled—
    If it meant fortune, fame, or peace of thought—
    If it meant,—but I dread
    To speak what you may know too well:
    Still there was truth in the sad oracle. _40

    6.
    The crane o'er seas and forests seeks her home;
    No bird so wild but has its quiet nest,
    When it no more would roam;
    The sleepless billows on the ocean's breast
    Break like a bursting heart, and die in foam, _45
    And thus at length find rest:
    Doubtless there is a place of peace
    Where MY weak heart and all its throbs will cease.

    7.
    I asked her, yesterday, if she believed
    That I had resolution. One who HAD _50
    Would ne'er have thus relieved
    His heart with words,—but what his judgement bade
    Would do, and leave the scorner unrelieved.
    These verses are too sad
    To send to you, but that I know, _55
    Happy yourself, you feel another's woe.

    NOTES:
    _10 Indifference, which once hurt me, is now grown Trelawny manuscript.
    _18 Dear friends, dear friend Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    Dear gentle friend 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
    _26 ever]lately Trelawny manuscript.
    _28 in Trelawny manuscript; on 1834, editions 1839,
    _43 When 1839, 2nd edition; Whence 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
    _48 will 1839, 2nd edition; shall 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
    _53 unrelieved Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd. edition;
    unreprieved 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
    _54 are]were Trelawny manuscript.

    ***


    TO —.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    One word is too often profaned
    For me to profane it,
    One feeling too falsely disdained
    For thee to disdain it;
    One hope is too like despair _5
    For prudence to smother,
    And pity from thee more dear
    Than that from another.

    2.
    I can give not what men call love,
    But wilt thou accept not _10
    The worship the heart lifts above
    And the Heavens reject not,—
    The desire of the moth for the star,
    Of the night for the morrow,
    The devotion to something afar _15
    From the sphere of our sorrow?

    ***


    TO —.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    There is a Boscombe manuscript.]

    1.
    When passion's trance is overpast,
    If tenderness and truth could last,
    Or live, whilst all wild feelings keep
    Some mortal slumber, dark and deep,
    I should not weep, I should not weep! _5

    2.
    It were enough to feel, to see,
    Thy soft eyes gazing tenderly,
    And dream the rest—and burn and be
    The secret food of fires unseen,
    Couldst thou but be as thou hast been, _10

    3.
    After the slumber of the year
    The woodland violets reappear;
    All things revive in field or grove,
    And sky and sea, but two, which move
    And form all others, life and love. _15

    NOTE:
    _15 form Boscombe manuscript; for editions 1824, 1839.

    ***


    A BRIDAL SONG.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    The golden gates of Sleep unbar
    Where Strength and Beauty, met together,
    Kindle their image like a star
    In a sea of glassy weather!
    Night, with all thy stars look down,— _5
    Darkness, weep thy holiest dew,—
    Never smiled the inconstant moon
    On a pair so true.
    Let eyes not see their own delight;—
    Haste, swift Hour, and thy flight _10
    Oft renew.

    2.
    Fairies, sprites, and angels, keep her!
    Holy stars, permit no wrong!
    And return to wake the sleeper,
    Dawn,—ere it be long! _15
    O joy! O fear! what will be done
    In the absence of the sun!
    Come along!

    ***


    EPITHALAMIUM.



    ANOTHER VERSION OF THE PRECEDING.

    [Published by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847.]

    Night, with all thine eyes look down!
    Darkness shed its holiest dew!
    When ever smiled the inconstant moon
    On a pair so true?
    Hence, coy hour! and quench thy light, _5
    Lest eyes see their own delight!
    Hence, swift hour! and thy loved flight
    Oft renew.

    BOYS:
    O joy! O fear! what may be done
    In the absence of the sun? _10
    Come along!
    The golden gates of sleep unbar!
    When strength and beauty meet together,
    Kindles their image like a star
    In a sea of glassy weather. _15
    Hence, coy hour! and quench thy light,
    Lest eyes see their own delight!
    Hence, swift hour! and thy loved flight
    Oft renew.

    GIRLS:
    O joy! O fear! what may be done _20
    In the absence of the sun?
    Come along!
    Fairies! sprites! and angels, keep her!
    Holiest powers, permit no wrong!
    And return, to wake the sleeper, _25
    Dawn, ere it be long.
    Hence, swift hour! and quench thy light,
    Lest eyes see their own delight!
    Hence, coy hour! and thy loved flight
    Oft renew. _30

    BOYS AND GIRLS:
    O joy! O fear! what will be done
    In the absence of the sun?
    Come along!

    NOTE:
    _17 Lest]Let 1847.

    ***


    ANOTHER VERSION OF THE SAME.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870,
    from the Trelawny manuscript of Edward Williams's play, "The Promise:
    or, A Year, a Month, and a Day".]

    BOYS SING:
    Night! with all thine eyes look down!
    Darkness! weep thy holiest dew!
    Never smiled the inconstant moon
    On a pair so true.
    Haste, coy hour! and quench all light, _5
    Lest eyes see their own delight!
    Haste, swift hour! and thy loved flight
    Oft renew!

    GIRLS SING:
    Fairies, sprites, and angels, keep her!
    Holy stars! permit no wrong! _10
    And return, to wake the sleeper,
    Dawn, ere it be long!
    O joy! O fear! there is not one
    Of us can guess what may be done
    In the absence of the sun:— _15
    Come along!

    BOYS:
    Oh! linger long, thou envious eastern lamp
    In the damp
    Caves of the deep!

    GIRLS:
    Nay, return, Vesper! urge thy lazy car! _20
    Swift unbar
    The gates of Sleep!

    CHORUS:
    The golden gate of Sleep unbar,
    When Strength and Beauty, met together,
    Kindle their image, like a star _25
    In a sea of glassy weather.
    May the purple mist of love
    Round them rise, and with them move,
    Nourishing each tender gem
    Which, like flowers, will burst from them. _30
    As the fruit is to the tree
    May their children ever be!

    ***


    LOVE, HOPE, DESIRE, AND FEAR.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862. 'A very free
    translation of Brunetto Latini's "Tesoretto", lines 81-154.'—A.C.
    Bradley.]

    ...

    And many there were hurt by that strong boy,
    His name, they said, was Pleasure,
    And near him stood, glorious beyond measure
    Four Ladies who possess all empery
    In earth and air and sea, _5
    Nothing that lives from their award is free.
    Their names will I declare to thee,
    Love, Hope, Desire, and Fear,
    And they the regents are
    Of the four elements that frame the heart, _10
    And each diversely exercised her art
    By force or circumstance or sleight
    To prove her dreadful might
    Upon that poor domain.
    Desire presented her [false] glass, and then _15
    The spirit dwelling there
    Was spellbound to embrace what seemed so fair
    Within that magic mirror,
    And dazed by that bright error,
    It would have scorned the [shafts] of the avenger _20
    And death, and penitence, and danger,
    Had not then silent Fear
    Touched with her palsying spear,
    So that as if a frozen torrent
    The blood was curdled in its current; _25
    It dared not speak, even in look or motion,
    But chained within itself its proud devotion.
    Between Desire and Fear thou wert
    A wretched thing, poor heart!
    Sad was his life who bore thee in his breast, _30
    Wild bird for that weak nest.
    Till Love even from fierce Desire it bought,
    And from the very wound of tender thought
    Drew solace, and the pity of sweet eyes
    Gave strength to bear those gentle agonies, _35
    Surmount the loss, the terror, and the sorrow.
    Then Hope approached, she who can borrow
    For poor to-day, from rich tomorrow,
    And Fear withdrew, as night when day
    Descends upon the orient ray, _40
    And after long and vain endurance
    The poor heart woke to her assurance.
    —At one birth these four were born
    With the world's forgotten morn,
    And from Pleasure still they hold _45
    All it circles, as of old.
    When, as summer lures the swallow,
    Pleasure lures the heart to follow—
    O weak heart of little wit!
    The fair hand that wounded it, _50
    Seeking, like a panting hare,
    Refuge in the lynx's lair,
    Love, Desire, Hope, and Fear,
    Ever will be near.

    ***


    FRAGMENTS WRITTEN FOR HELLAS.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    1.
    Fairest of the Destinies,
    Disarray thy dazzling eyes:
    Keener far thy lightnings are
    Than the winged [bolts] thou bearest,
    And the smile thou wearest _5
    Wraps thee as a star
    Is wrapped in light.

    2.
    Could Arethuse to her forsaken urn
    From Alpheus and the bitter Doris run,
    Or could the morning shafts of purest light _10
    Again into the quivers of the Sun
    Be gathered—could one thought from its wild flight
    Return into the temple of the brain
    Without a change, without a stain,—
    Could aught that is, ever again _15
    Be what it once has ceased to be,
    Greece might again be free!

    3.
    A star has fallen upon the earth
    Mid the benighted nations,
    A quenchless atom of immortal light, _20
    A living spark of Night,
    A cresset shaken from the constellations.
    Swifter than the thunder fell
    To the heart of Earth, the well
    Where its pulses flow and beat, _25
    And unextinct in that cold source
    Burns, and on ... course
    Guides the sphere which is its prison,
    Like an angelic spirit pent
    In a form of mortal birth, _30
    Till, as a spirit half-arisen
    Shatters its charnel, it has rent,
    In the rapture of its mirth,
    The thin and painted garment of the Earth,
    Ruining its chaos—a fierce breath _35
    Consuming all its forms of living death.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'I WOULD NOT BE A KING'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    I would not be a king—enough
    Of woe it is to love;
    The path to power is steep and rough,
    And tempests reign above.
    I would not climb the imperial throne; _5
    'Tis built on ice which fortune's sun
    Thaws in the height of noon.
    Then farewell, king, yet were I one,
    Care would not come so soon.
    Would he and I were far away _10
    Keeping flocks on Himalay!

    ***


    GINEVRA.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824,
    and dated 'Pisa, 1821.']

    Wild, pale, and wonder-stricken, even as one
    Who staggers forth into the air and sun
    From the dark chamber of a mortal fever,
    Bewildered, and incapable, and ever
    Fancying strange comments in her dizzy brain _5
    Of usual shapes, till the familiar train
    Of objects and of persons passed like things
    Strange as a dreamer's mad imaginings,
    Ginevra from the nuptial altar went;
    The vows to which her lips had sworn assent _10
    Rung in her brain still with a jarring din,
    Deafening the lost intelligence within.

    And so she moved under the bridal veil,
    Which made the paleness of her cheek more pale,
    And deepened the faint crimson of her mouth, _15
    And darkened her dark locks, as moonlight doth,—
    And of the gold and jewels glittering there
    She scarce felt conscious,—but the weary glare
    Lay like a chaos of unwelcome light,
    Vexing the sense with gorgeous undelight, _20
    A moonbeam in the shadow of a cloud
    Was less heavenly fair—her face was bowed,
    And as she passed, the diamonds in her hair
    Were mirrored in the polished marble stair
    Which led from the cathedral to the street; _25
    And ever as she went her light fair feet
    Erased these images.

    The bride-maidens who round her thronging came,
    Some with a sense of self-rebuke and shame,
    Envying the unenviable; and others
    Making the joy which should have been another's _30
    Their own by gentle sympathy; and some
    Sighing to think of an unhappy home:
    Some few admiring what can ever lure
    Maidens to leave the heaven serene and pure
    Of parents' smiles for life's great cheat; a thing _35
    Bitter to taste, sweet in imagining.

    But they are all dispersed—and, lo! she stands
    Looking in idle grief on her white hands,
    Alone within the garden now her own; _40
    And through the sunny air, with jangling tone,
    The music of the merry marriage-bells,
    Killing the azure silence, sinks and swells;—
    Absorbed like one within a dream who dreams
    That he is dreaming, until slumber seems _45
    A mockery of itself—when suddenly
    Antonio stood before her, pale as she.
    With agony, with sorrow, and with pride,
    He lifted his wan eyes upon the bride,
    And said—'Is this thy faith?' and then as one _50
    Whose sleeping face is stricken by the sun
    With light like a harsh voice, which bids him rise
    And look upon his day of life with eyes
    Which weep in vain that they can dream no more,
    Ginevra saw her lover, and forbore _55
    To shriek or faint, and checked the stifling blood
    Rushing upon her heart, and unsubdued
    Said—'Friend, if earthly violence or ill,
    Suspicion, doubt, or the tyrannic will
    Of parents, chance or custom, time or change, _60
    Or circumstance, or terror, or revenge,
    Or wildered looks, or words, or evil speech,
    With all their stings and venom can impeach
    Our love,—we love not:—if the grave which hides
    The victim from the tyrant, and divides _65
    The cheek that whitens from the eyes that dart
    Imperious inquisition to the heart
    That is another's, could dissever ours,
    We love not.'—'What! do not the silent hours
    Beckon thee to Gherardi's bridal bed? _70
    Is not that ring'—a pledge, he would have said,
    Of broken vows, but she with patient look
    The golden circle from her finger took,
    And said—'Accept this token of my faith,
    The pledge of vows to be absolved by death; _75
    And I am dead or shall be soon—my knell
    Will mix its music with that merry bell,
    Does it not sound as if they sweetly said
    "We toll a corpse out of the marriage-bed"?
    The flowers upon my bridal chamber strewn _80
    Will serve unfaded for my bier—so soon
    That even the dying violet will not die
    Before Ginevra.' The strong fantasy
    Had made her accents weaker and more weak,
    And quenched the crimson life upon her cheek, _85
    And glazed her eyes, and spread an atmosphere
    Round her, which chilled the burning noon with fear,
    Making her but an image of the thought
    Which, like a prophet or a shadow, brought
    News of the terrors of the coming time. _90
    Like an accuser branded with the crime
    He would have cast on a beloved friend,
    Whose dying eyes reproach not to the end
    The pale betrayer—he then with vain repentance
    Would share, he cannot now avert, the sentence— _95
    Antonio stood and would have spoken, when
    The compound voice of women and of men
    Was heard approaching; he retired, while she
    Was led amid the admiring company
    Back to the palace,—and her maidens soon _100
    Changed her attire for the afternoon,
    And left her at her own request to keep
    An hour of quiet rest:—like one asleep
    With open eyes and folded hands she lay,
    Pale in the light of the declining day. _105

    Meanwhile the day sinks fast, the sun is set,
    And in the lighted hall the guests are met;
    The beautiful looked lovelier in the light
    Of love, and admiration, and delight
    Reflected from a thousand hearts and eyes, _110
    Kindling a momentary Paradise.
    This crowd is safer than the silent wood,
    Where love's own doubts disturb the solitude;
    On frozen hearts the fiery rain of wine
    Falls, and the dew of music more divine _115
    Tempers the deep emotions of the time
    To spirits cradled in a sunny clime:—
    How many meet, who never yet have met,
    To part too soon, but never to forget.
    How many saw the beauty, power and wit _120
    Of looks and words which ne'er enchanted yet;
    But life's familiar veil was now withdrawn,
    As the world leaps before an earthquake's dawn,
    And unprophetic of the coming hours,
    The matin winds from the expanded flowers _125
    Scatter their hoarded incense, and awaken
    The earth, until the dewy sleep is shaken
    From every living heart which it possesses,
    Through seas and winds, cities and wildernesses,
    As if the future and the past were all _130
    Treasured i' the instant;—so Gherardi's hall
    Laughed in the mirth of its lord's festival,
    Till some one asked—'Where is the Bride?' And then
    A bridesmaid went,—and ere she came again
    A silence fell upon the guests—a pause _135
    Of expectation, as when beauty awes
    All hearts with its approach, though unbeheld;
    Then wonder, and then fear that wonder quelled;—
    For whispers passed from mouth to ear which drew
    The colour from the hearer's cheeks, and flew _140
    Louder and swifter round the company;
    And then Gherardi entered with an eye
    Of ostentatious trouble, and a crowd
    Surrounded him, and some were weeping loud.

    They found Ginevra dead! if it be death _145
    To lie without motion, or pulse, or breath,
    With waxen cheeks, and limbs cold, stiff, and white,
    And open eyes, whose fixed and glassy light
    Mocked at the speculation they had owned.
    If it be death, when there is felt around _150
    A smell of clay, a pale and icy glare,
    And silence, and a sense that lifts the hair
    From the scalp to the ankles, as it were
    Corruption from the spirit passing forth,
    And giving all it shrouded to the earth, _155
    And leaving as swift lightning in its flight
    Ashes, and smoke, and darkness: in our night
    Of thought we know thus much of death,—no more
    Than the unborn dream of our life before
    Their barks are wrecked on its inhospitable shore. _160
    The marriage feast and its solemnity
    Was turned to funeral pomp—the company,
    With heavy hearts and looks, broke up; nor they
    Who loved the dead went weeping on their way
    Alone, but sorrow mixed with sad surprise _165
    Loosened the springs of pity in all eyes,
    On which that form, whose fate they weep in vain,
    Will never, thought they, kindle smiles again.
    The lamps which, half extinguished in their haste,
    Gleamed few and faint o'er the abandoned feast, _170
    Showed as it were within the vaulted room
    A cloud of sorrow hanging, as if gloom
    Had passed out of men's minds into the air.
    Some few yet stood around Gherardi there,
    Friends and relations of the dead,—and he, _175
    A loveless man, accepted torpidly
    The consolation that he wanted not;
    Awe in the place of grief within him wrought.
    Their whispers made the solemn silence seem
    More still—some wept,... _180
    Some melted into tears without a sob,
    And some with hearts that might be heard to throb
    Leaned on the table and at intervals
    Shuddered to hear through the deserted halls
    And corridors the thrilling shrieks which came _185
    Upon the breeze of night, that shook the flame
    Of every torch and taper as it swept
    From out the chamber where the women kept;—
    Their tears fell on the dear companion cold
    Of pleasures now departed; then was knolled _190
    The bell of death, and soon the priests arrived,
    And finding Death their penitent had shrived,
    Returned like ravens from a corpse whereon
    A vulture has just feasted to the bone.
    And then the mourning women came.— _195

    ...

    THE DIRGE.

    Old winter was gone
    In his weakness back to the mountains hoar,
    And the spring came down
    From the planet that hovers upon the shore

    Where the sea of sunlight encroaches _200
    On the limits of wintry night;—
    If the land, and the air, and the sea,
    Rejoice not when spring approaches,
    We did not rejoice in thee,
    Ginevra! _205

    She is still, she is cold
    On the bridal couch,
    One step to the white deathbed,
    And one to the bier,
    And one to the charnel—and one, oh where? _210
    The dark arrow fled
    In the noon.

    Ere the sun through heaven once more has rolled,
    The rats in her heart
    Will have made their nest, _215
    And the worms be alive in her golden hair,
    While the Spirit that guides the sun,
    Sits throned in his flaming chair,
    She shall sleep.

    NOTES:
    22 Was]Were cj. Rossetti.old
    26 ever 1824; even editions 1839.
    _37 Bitter editions 1839; Better 1824.
    _63 wanting in 1824.
    _103 quiet rest cj. A.C. Bradley; quiet and rest 1824.
    _129 winds]lands cj. Forman; waves, sands or strands cj. Rossetti.
    _167 On]In cj. Rossetti.

    ***


    EVENING: PONTE AL MARE, PISA



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    There is a draft amongst the Boscombe manuscripts.]

    1.
    The sun is set; the swallows are asleep;
    The bats are flitting fast in the gray air;
    The slow soft toads out of damp corners creep,
    And evening's breath, wandering here and there
    Over the quivering surface of the stream, _5
    Wakes not one ripple from its summer dream.

    2.
    There is no dew on the dry grass to-night,
    Nor damp within the shadow of the trees;
    The wind is intermitting, dry, and light;
    And in the inconstant motion of the breeze _10
    The dust and straws are driven up and down,
    And whirled about the pavement of the town.

    3.
    Within the surface of the fleeting river
    The wrinkled image of the city lay,
    Immovably unquiet, and forever _15
    It trembles, but it never fades away;
    Go to the...
    You, being changed, will find it then as now.

    4.
    The chasm in which the sun has sunk is shut
    By darkest barriers of cinereous cloud, _20
    Like mountain over mountain huddled—but
    Growing and moving upwards in a crowd,
    And over it a space of watery blue,
    Which the keen evening star is shining through..

    NOTES:
    _6 summer 1839, 2nd edition; silent 1824, 1839, 1st edition.
    _20 cinereous Boscombe manuscript; enormous editions 1824, 1839.

    ***


    THE BOAT ON THE SERCHIO.



    [Published in part (lines 1-61, 88-118) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous
    Poems", 1824; revised and enlarged by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical
    Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    Our boat is asleep on Serchio's stream,
    Its sails are folded like thoughts in a dream,
    The helm sways idly, hither and thither;
    Dominic, the boatman, has brought the mast,
    And the oars, and the sails; but 'tis sleeping fast, _5
    Like a beast, unconscious of its tether.

    The stars burnt out in the pale blue air,
    And the thin white moon lay withering there;
    To tower, and cavern, and rift, and tree,
    The owl and the bat fled drowsily. _10
    Day had kindled the dewy woods,
    And the rocks above and the stream below,
    And the vapours in their multitudes,
    And the Apennine's shroud of summer snow,
    And clothed with light of aery gold _15
    The mists in their eastern caves uprolled.

    Day had awakened all things that be,
    The lark and the thrush and the swallow free,
    And the milkmaid's song and the mower's scythe
    And the matin-bell and the mountain bee: _20
    Fireflies were quenched on the dewy corn,
    Glow-worms went out on the river's brim,
    Like lamps which a student forgets to trim:
    The beetle forgot to wind his horn,
    The crickets were still in the meadow and hill: _25
    Like a flock of rooks at a farmer's gun
    Night's dreams and terrors, every one,
    Fled from the brains which are their prey
    From the lamp's death to the morning ray.

    All rose to do the task He set to each, _30
    Who shaped us to His ends and not our own;
    The million rose to learn, and one to teach
    What none yet ever knew or can be known.
    And many rose
    Whose woe was such that fear became desire;— _35
    Melchior and Lionel were not among those;
    They from the throng of men had stepped aside,
    And made their home under the green hill-side.
    It was that hill, whose intervening brow
    Screens Lucca from the Pisan's envious eye, _40
    Which the circumfluous plain waving below,
    Like a wide lake of green fertility,
    With streams and fields and marshes bare,
    Divides from the far Apennines—which lie
    Islanded in the immeasurable air. _45

    'What think you, as she lies in her green cove,
    Our little sleeping boat is dreaming of?'
    'If morning dreams are true, why I should guess
    That she was dreaming of our idleness,
    And of the miles of watery way _50
    We should have led her by this time of day.'-

    'Never mind,' said Lionel,
    'Give care to the winds, they can bear it well
    About yon poplar-tops; and see
    The white clouds are driving merrily, _55
    And the stars we miss this morn will light
    More willingly our return to-night.—
    How it whistles, Dominic's long black hair!
    List, my dear fellow; the breeze blows fair:
    Hear how it sings into the air—' _60

    —'Of us and of our lazy motions,'
    Impatiently said Melchior,
    'If I can guess a boat's emotions;
    And how we ought, two hours before,
    To have been the devil knows where.' _65
    And then, in such transalpine Tuscan
    As would have killed a Della-Cruscan,

    ...

    So, Lionel according to his art
    Weaving his idle words, Melchior said:
    'She dreams that we are not yet out of bed; _70
    We'll put a soul into her, and a heart
    Which like a dove chased by a dove shall beat.'

    ...

    'Ay, heave the ballast overboard,
    And stow the eatables in the aft locker.'
    'Would not this keg be best a little lowered?' _75
    'No, now all's right.' 'Those bottles of warm tea—
    (Give me some straw)—must be stowed tenderly;
    Such as we used, in summer after six,
    To cram in greatcoat pockets, and to mix
    Hard eggs and radishes and rolls at Eton, _80
    And, couched on stolen hay in those green harbours
    Farmers called gaps, and we schoolboys called arbours,
    Would feast till eight.'

    ...

    With a bottle in one hand,
    As if his very soul were at a stand _85
    Lionel stood—when Melchior brought him steady:—
    'Sit at the helm—fasten this sheet—all ready!'

    The chain is loosed, the sails are spread,
    The living breath is fresh behind,
    As with dews and sunrise fed, _90
    Comes the laughing morning wind;—
    The sails are full, the boat makes head
    Against the Serchio's torrent fierce,
    Then flags with intermitting course,
    And hangs upon the wave, and stems _95
    The tempest of the...
    Which fervid from its mountain source
    Shallow, smooth and strong doth come,—
    Swift as fire, tempestuously
    It sweeps into the affrighted sea; _100
    In morning's smile its eddies coil,
    Its billows sparkle, toss and boil,
    Torturing all its quiet light
    Into columns fierce and bright.

    The Serchio, twisting forth _105
    Between the marble barriers which it clove
    At Ripafratta, leads through the dread chasm
    The wave that died the death which lovers love,
    Living in what it sought; as if this spasm
    Had not yet passed, the toppling mountains cling, _110
    But the clear stream in full enthusiasm
    Pours itself on the plain, then wandering
    Down one clear path of effluence crystalline
    Sends its superfluous waves, that they may fling
    At Arno's feet tribute of corn and wine;
    Then, through the pestilential deserts wild
    Of tangled marsh and woods of stunted pine,
    It rushes to the Ocean.

    NOTES:
    _58-_61 List, my dear fellow, the breeze blows fair;
    How it scatters Dominic's long black hair!
    Singing of us, and our lazy motions,
    If I can guess a boat's emotions.'—editions 1824, 1839.
    _61-_67 Rossetti places these lines conjecturally between lines 51 and 52.
    _61-_65 'are evidently an alternative version of 48-51' (A.C. Bradley).
    _95, _96 and stems The tempest of the wanting in editions 1824, 1839.
    _112 then Boscombe manuscript; until editions 1824, 1839
    _114 superfluous Boscombe manuscript; clear editions 1824, 1839.
    _117 pine Boscombe manuscript; fir editions 1824, 1839.

    ***


    MUSIC.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    1.
    I pant for the music which is divine,
    My heart in its thirst is a dying flower;
    Pour forth the sound like enchanted wine,
    Loosen the notes in a silver shower;
    Like a herbless plain, for the gentle rain, _5
    I gasp, I faint, till they wake again.

    2.
    Let me drink of the spirit of that sweet sound,
    More, oh more,—I am thirsting yet;
    It loosens the serpent which care has bound
    Upon my heart to stifle it; _10
    The dissolving strain, through every vein,
    Passes into my heart and brain.

    3.
    As the scent of a violet withered up,
    Which grew by the brink of a silver lake,
    When the hot noon has drained its dewy cup, _15
    And mist there was none its thirst to slake—
    And the violet lay dead while the odour flew
    On the wings of the wind o'er the waters blue—

    4.
    As one who drinks from a charmed cup
    Of foaming, and sparkling, and murmuring wine, _20
    Whom, a mighty Enchantress filling up,
    Invites to love with her kiss divine...

    NOTES:
    _16 mist 1824; tank 1839, 2nd edition.

    ***


    SONNET TO BYRON.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Shelley Papers", 1832 (lines 1-7), and "Life
    of Shelley", 1847 (lines 1-9, 12-14). Revised and completed from the
    Boscombe manuscript by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.",
    1870.]

    [I am afraid these verses will not please you, but]
    If I esteemed you less, Envy would kill
    Pleasure, and leave to Wonder and Despair
    The ministration of the thoughts that fill
    The mind which, like a worm whose life may share
    A portion of the unapproachable, _5
    Marks your creations rise as fast and fair
    As perfect worlds at the Creator's will.

    But such is my regard that nor your power
    To soar above the heights where others [climb],
    Nor fame, that shadow of the unborn hour _10
    Cast from the envious future on the time,
    Move one regret for his unhonoured name
    Who dares these words:—the worm beneath the sod
    May lift itself in homage of the God.

    NOTES:
    _1 you edition 1870; him 1832; thee 1847.
    _4 So edition 1870; My soul which as a worm may haply share 1832;
    My soul which even as a worm may share 1847.
    _6 your edition 1870; his 1832; thy 1847.
    _8, _9 So edition 1870 wanting 1832 -
    But not the blessings of thy happier lot,
    Nor thy well-won prosperity, and fame 1847.
    _10, _11 So edition 1870; wanting 1832, 1847.
    _12-_14 So 1847, edition 1870; wanting 1832.


    ***

    FRAGMENT ON KEATS.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition—ED.]

    ON KEATS, WHO DESIRED THAT ON HIS TOMB SHOULD BE INSCRIBED—

    'Here lieth One whose name was writ on water.
    But, ere the breath that could erase it blew,
    Death, in remorse for that fell slaughter,
    Death, the immortalizing winter, flew
    Athwart the stream,—and time's printless torrent grew _5
    A scroll of crystal, blazoning the name
    Of Adonais!

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'METHOUGHT I WAS A BILLOW IN THE CROWD'.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    Methought I was a billow in the crowd
    Of common men, that stream without a shore,
    That ocean which at once is deaf and loud;
    That I, a man, stood amid many more
    By a wayside..., which the aspect bore _5
    Of some imperial metropolis,
    Where mighty shapes—pyramid, dome, and tower—
    Gleamed like a pile of crags—

    ***


    TO-MORROW.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    Where art thou, beloved To-morrow?
    When young and old, and strong and weak,
    Rich and poor, through joy and sorrow,
    Thy sweet smiles we ever seek,—
    In thy place—ah! well-a-day! _5
    We find the thing we fled—To-day.

    ***


    STANZA.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.
    Connected by Dowden with the preceding.]

    If I walk in Autumn's even
    While the dead leaves pass,
    If I look on Spring's soft heaven,—
    Something is not there which was
    Winter's wondrous frost and snow, _5
    Summer's clouds, where are they now?

    ***


    FRAGMENT: A WANDERER.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    He wanders, like a day-appearing dream,
    Through the dim wildernesses of the mind;
    Through desert woods and tracts, which seem
    Like ocean, homeless, boundless, unconfined.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: LIFE ROUNDED WITH SLEEP.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    The babe is at peace within the womb;
    The corpse is at rest within the tomb:
    We begin in what we end.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'I FAINT, I PERISH WITH MY LOVE!'.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    I faint, I perish with my love! I grow
    Frail as a cloud whose [splendours] pale
    Under the evening's ever-changing glow:
    I die like mist upon the gale,
    And like a wave under the calm I fail. _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THE LADY OF THE SOUTH.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    Faint with love, the Lady of the South
    Lay in the paradise of Lebanon
    Under a heaven of cedar boughs: the drouth
    Of love was on her lips; the light was gone
    Out of her eyes— _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: ZEPHYRUS THE AWAKENER.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    Come, thou awakener of the spirit's ocean,
    Zephyr, whom to thy cloud or cave
    No thought can trace! speed with thy gentle motion!

    ***


    FRAGMENT: RAIN.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    The gentleness of rain was in the wind.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'WHEN SOFT WINDS AND SUNNY SKIES'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    When soft winds and sunny skies
    With the green earth harmonize,
    And the young and dewy dawn,
    Bold as an unhunted fawn,
    Up the windless heaven is gone,— _5
    Laugh—for ambushed in the day,—
    Clouds and whirlwinds watch their prey.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'AND THAT I WALK THUS PROUDLY CROWNED'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    And that I walk thus proudly crowned withal
    Is that 'tis my distinction; if I fall,
    I shall not weep out of the vital day,
    To-morrow dust, nor wear a dull decay.

    NOTE:
    _2 'Tis that is or In that is cj. A.C. Bradley.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'THE RUDE WIND IS SINGING'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    The rude wind is singing
    The dirge of the music dead;
    The cold worms are clinging
    Where kisses were lately fed.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'GREAT SPIRIT'.



    [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]

    Great Spirit whom the sea of boundless thought
    Nurtures within its unimagined caves,
    In which thou sittest sole, as in my mind,
    Giving a voice to its mysterious waves—

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'O THOU IMMORTAL DEITY'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]

    O thou immortal deity
    Whose throne is in the depth of human thought,
    I do adjure thy power and thee
    By all that man may be, by all that he is not,
    By all that he has been and yet must be! _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: THE FALSE LAUREL AND THE TRUE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]

    'What art thou, Presumptuous, who profanest
    The wreath to mighty poets only due,
    Even whilst like a forgotten moon thou wanest?
    Touch not those leaves which for the eternal few
    Who wander o'er the Paradise of fame, _5
    In sacred dedication ever grew:
    One of the crowd thou art without a name.'
    'Ah, friend, 'tis the false laurel that I wear;
    Bright though it seem, it is not the same
    As that which bound Milton's immortal hair; _10
    Its dew is poison; and the hopes that quicken
    Under its chilling shade, though seeming fair,
    Are flowers which die almost before they sicken.'

    ***


    FRAGMENT: MAY THE LIMNER.



    [This and the three following Fragments were edited from manuscript
    Shelley D1 at the Bodleian Library and published by Mr. C.D. Locock,
    "Examination", etc., Oxford, Clarendon Press, 1903. They are printed
    here as belonging probably to the year 1821.]

    When May is painting with her colours gay
    The landscape sketched by April her sweet twin...

    ***


    FRAGMENT: BEAUTY'S HALO.



    [Published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination", etc, 1903.]

    Thy beauty hangs around thee like
    Splendour around the moon—
    Thy voice, as silver bells that strike
    Upon

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'THE DEATH KNELL IS RINGING'.



    ('This reads like a study for "Autumn, A Dirge"' (Locock). Might it not
    be part of a projected Fit v. of "The Fugitives"?—ED.)

    [Published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination", etc., 1903.]

    The death knell is ringing
    The raven is singing
    The earth worm is creeping
    The mourners are weeping
    Ding dong, bell— _5

    ***


    FRAGMENT: 'I STOOD UPON A HEAVEN-CLEAVING TURRET'.



    I stood upon a heaven-cleaving turret
    Which overlooked a wide Metropolis—
    And in the temple of my heart my Spirit
    Lay prostrate, and with parted lips did kiss
    The dust of Desolations [altar] hearth— _5
    And with a voice too faint to falter
    It shook that trembling fane with its weak prayer
    'Twas noon,—the sleeping skies were blue
    The city

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1821, BY MRS. SHELLEY.


    My task becomes inexpressibly painful as the year draws near that which sealed our earthly fate, and each poem, and each event it records, has a real or mysterious connection with the fatal catastrophe. I feel that I am incapable of putting on paper the history of those times. The heart of the man, abhorred of the poet, who could

        'peep and botanize
        Upon his mother's grave,'

    does not appear to me more inexplicably framed than that of one who can dissect and probe past woes, and repeat to the public ear the groans drawn from them in the throes of their agony.

    The year 1821 was spent in Pisa, or at the Baths of San Giuliano. We were not, as our wont had been, alone; friends had gathered round us. Nearly all are dead, and, when Memory recurs to the past, she wanders among tombs. The genius, with all his blighting errors and mighty powers; the companion of Shelley's ocean-wanderings, and the sharer of his fate, than whom no man ever existed more gentle, generous, and fearless; and others, who found in Shelley's society, and in his great knowledge and warm sympathy, delight, instruction, and solace; have joined him beyond the grave. A few survive who have felt life a desert since he left it. What misfortune can equal death? Change can convert every other into a blessing, or heal its sting—death alone has no cure. It shakes the foundations of the earth on which we tread; it destroys its beauty; it casts down our shelter; it exposes us bare to desolation. When those we love have passed into eternity, 'life is the desert and the solitude' in which we are forced to linger—but never find comfort more.

    There is much in the "Adonais" which seems now more applicable to Shelley himself than to the young and gifted poet whom he mourned. The poetic view he takes of death, and the lofty scorn he displays towards his calumniators, are as a prophecy on his own destiny when received among immortal names, and the poisonous breath of critics has vanished into emptiness before the fame he inherits.

    Shelley's favourite taste was boating; when living near the Thames or by the Lake of Geneva, much of his life was spent on the water. On the shore of every lake or stream or sea near which he dwelt, he had a boat moored. He had latterly enjoyed this pleasure again. There are no pleasure-boats on the Arno; and the shallowness of its waters (except in winter-time, when the stream is too turbid and impetuous for boating) rendered it difficult to get any skiff light enough to float. Shelley, however, overcame the difficulty; he, together with a friend, contrived a boat such as the huntsmen carry about with them in the Maremma, to cross the sluggish but deep streams that intersect the forests,—a boat of laths and pitched canvas. It held three persons; and he was often seen on the Arno in it, to the horror of the Italians, who remonstrated on the danger, and could not understand how anyone could take pleasure in an exercise that risked life. 'Ma va per la vita!' they exclaimed. I little thought how true their words would prove. He once ventured, with a friend, on the glassy sea of a calm day, down the Arno and round the coast to Leghorn, which, by keeping close in shore, was very practicable. They returned to Pisa by the canal, when, missing the direct cut, they got entangled among weeds, and the boat upset; a wetting was all the harm done, except that the intense cold of his drenched clothes made Shelley faint. Once I went down with him to the mouth of the Arno, where the stream, then high and swift, met the tideless sea, and disturbed its sluggish waters. It was a waste and dreary scene; the desert sand stretched into a point surrounded by waves that broke idly though perpetually around; it was a scene very similar to Lido, of which he had said—

        'I love all waste
        And solitary places; where we taste
        The pleasure of believing what we see
        Is boundless, as we wish our souls to be:
        And such was this wide ocean, and this shore
        More barren than its billows.'

    Our little boat was of greater use, unaccompanied by any danger, when we removed to the Baths. Some friends lived at the village of Pugnano, four miles off, and we went to and fro to see them, in our boat, by the canal; which, fed by the Serchio, was, though an artificial, a full and picturesque stream, making its way under verdant banks, sheltered by trees that dipped their boughs into the murmuring waters. By day, multitudes of Ephemera darted to and fro on the surface; at night, the fireflies came out among the shrubs on the banks; the cicale at noon-day kept up their hum; the aziola cooed in the quiet evening. It was a pleasant summer, bright in all but Shelley's health and inconstant spirits; yet he enjoyed himself greatly, and became more and more attached to the part of the country were chance appeared to cast us. Sometimes he projected taking a farm situated on the height of one of the near hills, surrounded by chestnut and pine woods, and overlooking a wide extent of country: or settling still farther in the maritime Apennines, at Massa. Several of his slighter and unfinished poems were inspired by these scenes, and by the companions around us. It is the nature of that poetry, however, which overflows from the soul oftener to express sorrow and regret than joy; for it is when oppressed by the weight of life, and away from those he loves, that the poet has recourse to the solace of expression in verse.

    Still, Shelley's passion was the ocean; and he wished that our summers, instead of being passed among the hills near Pisa, should be spent on the shores of the sea. It was very difficult to find a spot. We shrank from Naples from a fear that the heats would disagree with Percy: Leghorn had lost its only attraction, since our friends who had resided there were returned to England; and, Monte Nero being the resort of many English, we did not wish to find ourselves in the midst of a colony of chance travellers. No one then thought it possible to reside at Via Reggio, which latterly has become a summer resort. The low lands and bad air of Maremma stretch the whole length of the western shores of the Mediterranean, till broken by the rocks and hills of Spezia. It was a vague idea, but Shelley suggested an excursion to Spezia, to see whether it would be feasible to spend a summer there. The beauty of the bay enchanted him. We saw no house to suit us; but the notion took root, and many circumstances, enchained as by fatality, occurred to urge him to execute it.

    He looked forward this autumn with great pleasure to the prospect of a visit from Leigh Hunt. When Shelley visited Lord Byron at Ravenna, the latter had suggested his coming out, together with the plan of a periodical work in which they should all join. Shelley saw a prospect of good for the fortunes of his friend, and pleasure in his society; and instantly exerted himself to have the plan executed. He did not intend himself joining in the work: partly from pride, not wishing to have the air of acquiring readers for his poetry by associating it with the compositions of more popular writers; and also because he might feel shackled in the free expression of his opinions, if any friends were to be compromised. By those opinions, carried even to their outermost extent, he wished to live and die, as being in his conviction not only true, but such as alone would conduce to the moral improvement and happiness of mankind. The sale of the work might meanwhile, either really or supposedly, be injured by the free expression of his thoughts; and this evil he resolved to avoid. ***


    POEMS WRITTEN IN 1822.




    THE ZUCCA.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and dated
    'January, 1822.' There is a copy amongst the Boscombe manuscripts.]

    1.
    Summer was dead and Autumn was expiring,
    And infant Winter laughed upon the land
    All cloudlessly and cold;—when I, desiring
    More in this world than any understand,
    Wept o'er the beauty, which, like sea retiring, _5
    Had left the earth bare as the wave-worn sand
    Of my lorn heart, and o'er the grass and flowers
    Pale for the falsehood of the flattering Hours.

    2.
    Summer was dead, but I yet lived to weep
    The instability of all but weeping; _10
    And on the Earth lulled in her winter sleep
    I woke, and envied her as she was sleeping.
    Too happy Earth! over thy face shall creep
    The wakening vernal airs, until thou, leaping
    From unremembered dreams, shalt ... see _15
    No death divide thy immortality.

    3.
    I loved—oh, no, I mean not one of ye,
    Or any earthly one, though ye are dear
    As human heart to human heart may be;—
    I loved, I know not what—but this low sphere _20
    And all that it contains, contains not thee,
    Thou, whom, seen nowhere, I feel everywhere.
    From Heaven and Earth, and all that in them are,
    Veiled art thou, like a ... star.

    4.
    By Heaven and Earth, from all whose shapes thou flowest, _25
    Neither to be contained, delayed, nor hidden;
    Making divine the loftiest and the lowest,
    When for a moment thou art not forbidden
    To live within the life which thou bestowest;
    And leaving noblest things vacant and chidden, _30
    Cold as a corpse after the spirit's flight
    Blank as the sun after the birth of night.

    5.
    In winds, and trees, and streams, and all things common,
    In music and the sweet unconscious tone
    Of animals, and voices which are human, _35
    Meant to express some feelings of their own;
    In the soft motions and rare smile of woman,
    In flowers and leaves, and in the grass fresh-shown,
    Or dying in the autumn, I the most
    Adore thee present or lament thee lost. _40

    6.
    And thus I went lamenting, when I saw
    A plant upon the river's margin lie
    Like one who loved beyond his nature's law,
    And in despair had cast him down to die;
    Its leaves, which had outlived the frost, the thaw _45
    Had blighted; like a heart which hatred's eye
    Can blast not, but which pity kills; the dew
    Lay on its spotted leaves like tears too true.

    7.
    The Heavens had wept upon it, but the Earth
    Had crushed it on her maternal breast _50

    ...

    8.
    I bore it to my chamber, and I planted
    It in a vase full of the lightest mould;
    The winter beams which out of Heaven slanted
    Fell through the window-panes, disrobed of cold,
    Upon its leaves and flowers; the stars which panted _55
    In evening for the Day, whose car has rolled
    Over the horizon's wave, with looks of light
    Smiled on it from the threshold of the night.

    9.
    The mitigated influences of air
    And light revived the plant, and from it grew _60
    Strong leaves and tendrils, and its flowers fair,
    Full as a cup with the vine's burning dew,
    O'erflowed with golden colours; an atmosphere
    Of vital warmth enfolded it anew,
    And every impulse sent to every part
    The unbeheld pulsations of its heart. _65

    10.
    Well might the plant grow beautiful and strong,
    Even if the air and sun had smiled not on it;
    For one wept o'er it all the winter long
    Tears pure as Heaven's rain, which fell upon it _70
    Hour after hour; for sounds of softest song
    Mixed with the stringed melodies that won it
    To leave the gentle lips on which it slept,
    Had loosed the heart of him who sat and wept.

    11.
    Had loosed his heart, and shook the leaves and flowers _75
    On which he wept, the while the savage storm
    Waked by the darkest of December's hours
    Was raving round the chamber hushed and warm;
    The birds were shivering in their leafless bowers,
    The fish were frozen in the pools, the form _80
    Of every summer plant was dead
    Whilst this....

    ...

    NOTES:
    _7 lorn Boscombe manuscript; poor edition 1824.
    _23 So Boscombe manuscript; Dim object of soul's idolatry edition 1824.
    _24 star Boscombe manuscript; wanting edition 1824.
    _38 grass fresh Boscombe manuscript; fresh grass edition 1824.
    _46 like Boscombe manuscript; as edition 1824.
    _68 air and sun Boscombe manuscript; sun and air edition 1824.

    ***


    THE MAGNETIC LADY TO HER PATIENT.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", August 11, 1832.
    There is a copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]

    1.
    'Sleep, sleep on! forget thy pain;
    My hand is on thy brow,
    My spirit on thy brain;
    My pity on thy heart, poor friend;
    And from my fingers flow _5
    The powers of life, and like a sign,
    Seal thee from thine hour of woe;
    And brood on thee, but may not blend
    With thine.

    2.
    'Sleep, sleep on! I love thee not; _10
    But when I think that he
    Who made and makes my lot
    As full of flowers as thine of weeds,
    Might have been lost like thee;
    And that a hand which was not mine _15
    Might then have charmed his agony
    As I another's—my heart bleeds
    For thine.

    3.
    'Sleep, sleep, and with the slumber of
    The dead and the unborn _20
    Forget thy life and love;
    Forget that thou must wake forever;
    Forget the world's dull scorn;
    Forget lost health, and the divine
    Feelings which died in youth's brief morn; _25
    And forget me, for I can never
    Be thine.

    4.
    'Like a cloud big with a May shower,
    My soul weeps healing rain
    On thee, thou withered flower! _30
    It breathes mute music on thy sleep
    Its odour calms thy brain!
    Its light within thy gloomy breast
    Spreads like a second youth again.
    By mine thy being is to its deep _35
    Possessed.

    5.
    'The spell is done. How feel you now?'
    'Better—Quite well,' replied
    The sleeper.—'What would do _39
    You good when suffering and awake?
    What cure your head and side?—'
    'What would cure, that would kill me, Jane:
    And as I must on earth abide
    Awhile, yet tempt me not to break
    My chain.' _45

    NOTES;
    _1, _10 Sleep Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    Sleep on 1832, 1839, 1st edition.
    _16 charmed Trelawny manuscript;
    chased 1832, editions 1839.
    _21 love]woe 1832.
    _42 so Trelawny manuscript
    'Twould kill me what would cure my pain 1832, editions 1839.
    _44 Awhile yet, cj. A.C. Bradley.

    ***


    LINES: 'WHEN THE LAMP IS SHATTERED'.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
    There is a copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]

    1.
    When the lamp is shattered
    The light in the dust lies dead—
    When the cloud is scattered
    The rainbow's glory is shed.
    When the lute is broken, _5
    Sweet tones are remembered not;
    When the lips have spoken,
    Loved accents are soon forgot.

    2.
    As music and splendour
    Survive not the lamp and the lute, _10
    The heart's echoes render
    No song when the spirit is mute:—
    No song but sad dirges,
    Like the wind through a ruined cell,
    Or the mournful surges _15
    That ring the dead seaman's knell.

    3.
    When hearts have once mingled
    Love first leaves the well-built nest;
    The weak one is singled
    To endure what it once possessed. _20
    O Love! who bewailest
    The frailty of all things here,
    Why choose you the frailest
    For your cradle, your home, and your bier?

    4.
    Its passions will rock thee _25
    As the storms rock the ravens on high;
    Bright reason will mock thee,
    Like the sun from a wintry sky.
    From thy nest every rafter
    Will rot, and thine eagle home _30
    Leave thee naked to laughter,
    When leaves fall and cold winds come.

    NOTES:
    _6 tones edition 1824; notes Trelawny manuscript.
    _14 through edition 1824; in Trelawny manuscript.
    _16 dead edition 1824; lost Trelawny manuscript.
    _23 choose edition 1824; chose Trelawny manuscript.
    _25-_32 wanting Trelawny manuscript.

    ***


    TO JANE: THE INVITATION.



    [This and the following poem were published together in their original
    form as one piece under the title, "The Pine Forest of the Cascine near
    Pisa", by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824; reprinted in the same
    shape, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition; republished separately in
    their present form, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. There is a
    copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]

    Best and brightest, come away!
    Fairer far than this fair Day,
    Which, like thee to those in sorrow,
    Comes to bid a sweet good-morrow
    To the rough Year just awake _5
    In its cradle on the brake.
    The brightest hour of unborn Spring,
    Through the winter wandering,
    Found, it seems, the halcyon Morn
    To hoar February born, _10
    Bending from Heaven, in azure mirth,
    It kissed the forehead of the Earth,
    And smiled upon the silent sea,
    And bade the frozen streams be free,
    And waked to music all their fountains, _15
    And breathed upon the frozen mountains,
    And like a prophetess of May
    Strewed flowers upon the barren way,
    Making the wintry world appear
    Like one on whom thou smilest, dear. _20

    Away, away, from men and towns,
    To the wild wood and the downs—
    To the silent wilderness
    Where the soul need not repress
    Its music lest it should not find _25
    An echo in another's mind,
    While the touch of Nature's art
    Harmonizes heart to heart.
    I leave this notice on my door
    For each accustomed visitor:— _30
    'I am gone into the fields
    To take what this sweet hour yields;—
    Reflection, you may come to-morrow,
    Sit by the fireside with Sorrow.—
    You with the unpaid bill, Despair,—
    You, tiresome verse-reciter, Care,— _35
    I will pay you in the grave,—
    Death will listen to your stave.
    Expectation too, be off!
    To-day is for itself enough; _40
    Hope, in pity mock not Woe
    With smiles, nor follow where I go;
    Long having lived on thy sweet food,
    At length I find one moment's good
    After long pain—with all your love, _45
    This you never told me of.'

    Radiant Sister of the Day,
    Awake! arise! and come away!
    To the wild woods and the plains,
    And the pools where winter rains _50.
    Image all their roof of leaves,
    Where the pine its garland weaves
    Of sapless green and ivy dun
    Round stems that never kiss the sun;
    Where the lawns and pastures be, _55
    And the sandhills of the sea;—
    Where the melting hoar-frost wets
    The daisy-star that never sets,
    And wind-flowers, and violets,
    Which yet join not scent to hue, _60
    Crown the pale year weak and new;
    When the night is left behind
    In the deep east, dun and blind,
    And the blue noon is over us,
    And the multitudinous _65
    Billows murmur at our feet,
    Where the earth and ocean meet,
    And all things seem only one
    In the universal sun.

    NOTES:
    _34 with Trelawny manuscript; of 1839, 2nd edition.
    _44 moment's Trelawny manuscript; moment 1839, 2nd edition.
    _50 And Trelawny manuscript; To 1839, 2nd edition.
    _53 dun Trelawny manuscript; dim 1839, 2nd edition.

    ***


    TO JANE: THE RECOLLECTION.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.
    See the Editor's prefatory note to the preceding.]

    1.
    Now the last day of many days,
    All beautiful and bright as thou,
    The loveliest and the last, is dead,
    Rise, Memory, and write its praise!
    Up,—to thy wonted work! come, trace _5
    The epitaph of glory fled,—
    For now the Earth has changed its face,
    A frown is on the Heaven's brow.

    2.
    We wandered to the Pine Forest
    That skirts the Ocean's foam, _10
    The lightest wind was in its nest,
    The tempest in its home.
    The whispering waves were half asleep,
    The clouds were gone to play,
    And on the bosom of the deep _15
    The smile of Heaven lay;
    It seemed as if the hour were one
    Sent from beyond the skies,
    Which scattered from above the sun
    A light of Paradise. _20

    3.
    We paused amid the pines that stood
    The giants of the waste,
    Tortured by storms to shapes as rude
    As serpents interlaced;
    And, soothed by every azure breath, _25
    That under Heaven is blown,
    To harmonies and hues beneath,
    As tender as its own,
    Now all the tree-tops lay asleep,
    Like green waves on the sea, _30
    As still as in the silent deep
    The ocean woods may be.

    4.
    How calm it was!—the silence there
    By such a chain was bound
    That even the busy woodpecker _35
    Made stiller by her sound
    The inviolable quietness;
    The breath of peace we drew
    With its soft motion made not less
    The calm that round us grew. _40
    There seemed from the remotest seat
    Of the white mountain waste,
    To the soft flower beneath our feet,
    A magic circle traced,—
    A spirit interfused around _45
    A thrilling, silent life,—
    To momentary peace it bound
    Our mortal nature's strife;
    And still I felt the centre of
    The magic circle there _50
    Was one fair form that filled with love
    The lifeless atmosphere.

    5.
    We paused beside the pools that lie
    Under the forest bough,—
    Each seemed as 'twere a little sky _55
    Gulfed in a world below;
    A firmament of purple light
    Which in the dark earth lay,
    More boundless than the depth of night,
    And purer than the day— _60
    In which the lovely forests grew,
    As in the upper air,
    More perfect both in shape and hue
    Than any spreading there.
    There lay the glade and neighbouring lawn, _65
    And through the dark green wood
    The white sun twinkling like the dawn
    Out of a speckled cloud.
    Sweet views which in our world above
    Can never well be seen, _70
    Were imaged by the water's love
    Of that fair forest green.
    And all was interfused beneath
    With an Elysian glow,
    An atmosphere without a breath, _75
    A softer day below.
    Like one beloved the scene had lent
    To the dark water's breast,
    Its every leaf and lineament
    With more than truth expressed; _80
    Until an envious wind crept by,
    Like an unwelcome thought,
    Which from the mind's too faithful eye
    Blots one dear image out.
    Though thou art ever fair and kind, _85
    The forests ever green,
    Less oft is peace in Shelley's mind,
    Than calm in waters, seen.

    NOTES:
    _6 fled edition. 1824; dead Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition.
    _10 Ocean's]Ocean 1839, 2nd edition.
    _24 Interlaced, 1839; interlaced; cj. A.C. Bradley.
    _28 own; 1839 own, cj. A.C. Bradley.
    _42 white Trelawny manuscript; wide 1839, 2nd edition
    _87 Shelley's Trelawny manuscript; S—'s 1839, 2nd edition.]

    ***


    THE PINE FOREST OF THE CASCINE NEAR PISA.



    [This, the first draft of "To Jane: The Invitation, The Recollection",
    was published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and reprinted,
    "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. See Editor's Prefatory Note to
    "The Invitation", above.]

    Dearest, best and brightest,
    Come away,
    To the woods and to the fields!
    Dearer than this fairest day
    Which, like thee to those in sorrow, _5
    Comes to bid a sweet good-morrow
    To the rough Year just awake
    In its cradle in the brake.
    The eldest of the Hours of Spring,
    Into the Winter wandering, _10
    Looks upon the leafless wood,
    And the banks all bare and rude;
    Found, it seems, this halcyon Morn
    In February's bosom born,
    Bending from Heaven, in azure mirth, _15
    Kissed the cold forehead of the Earth,
    And smiled upon the silent sea,
    And bade the frozen streams be free;
    And waked to music all the fountains,
    And breathed upon the rigid mountains, _20
    And made the wintry world appear
    Like one on whom thou smilest, Dear.

    Radiant Sister of the Day,
    Awake! arise! and come away!
    To the wild woods and the plains, _25
    To the pools where winter rains
    Image all the roof of leaves,
    Where the pine its garland weaves
    Sapless, gray, and ivy dun
    Round stems that never kiss the sun— _30
    To the sandhills of the sea,
    Where the earliest violets be.

    Now the last day of many days,
    All beautiful and bright as thou,
    The loveliest and the last, is dead, _35
    Rise, Memory, and write its praise!
    And do thy wonted work and trace
    The epitaph of glory fled;
    For now the Earth has changed its face,
    A frown is on the Heaven's brow. _40

    We wandered to the Pine Forest
    That skirts the Ocean's foam,
    The lightest wind was in its nest,
    The tempest in its home.

    The whispering waves were half asleep, _45
    The clouds were gone to play,
    And on the woods, and on the deep
    The smile of Heaven lay.

    It seemed as if the day were one
    Sent from beyond the skies, _50
    Which shed to earth above the sun
    A light of Paradise.

    We paused amid the pines that stood,
    The giants of the waste,
    Tortured by storms to shapes as rude _55
    With stems like serpents interlaced.

    How calm it was—the silence there
    By such a chain was bound,
    That even the busy woodpecker
    Made stiller by her sound _60

    The inviolable quietness;
    The breath of peace we drew
    With its soft motion made not less
    The calm that round us grew.

    It seemed that from the remotest seat _65
    Of the white mountain's waste
    To the bright flower beneath our feet,
    A magic circle traced;—

    A spirit interfused around,
    A thinking, silent life; _70
    To momentary peace it bound
    Our mortal nature's strife;—

    And still, it seemed, the centre of
    The magic circle there,
    Was one whose being filled with love _75
    The breathless atmosphere.

    Were not the crocuses that grew
    Under that ilex-tree
    As beautiful in scent and hue
    As ever fed the bee? _80

    We stood beneath the pools that lie
    Under the forest bough,
    And each seemed like a sky
    Gulfed in a world below;

    A purple firmament of light _85
    Which in the dark earth lay,
    More boundless than the depth of night,
    And clearer than the day—

    In which the massy forests grew
    As in the upper air, _90
    More perfect both in shape and hue
    Than any waving there.

    Like one beloved the scene had lent
    To the dark water's breast
    Its every leaf and lineament _95
    With that clear truth expressed;

    There lay far glades and neighbouring lawn,
    And through the dark green crowd
    The white sun twinkling like the dawn
    Under a speckled cloud. _100

    Sweet views, which in our world above
    Can never well be seen,
    Were imaged by the water's love
    Of that fair forest green.

    And all was interfused beneath _105
    With an Elysian air,
    An atmosphere without a breath,
    A silence sleeping there.

    Until a wandering wind crept by,
    Like an unwelcome thought, _110
    Which from my mind's too faithful eye
    Blots thy bright image out.

    For thou art good and dear and kind,
    The forest ever green,
    But less of peace in S—'s mind,
    Than calm in waters, seen. _116.

    ***


    WITH A GUITAR, TO JANE.



    [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", October 20, 1832; "Frazer's
    Magazine", January 1833. There is a copy amongst the Trelawny
    manuscripts.]

    Ariel to Miranda:—Take
    This slave of Music, for the sake
    Of him who is the slave of thee,
    And teach it all the harmony
    In which thou canst, and only thou, _5
    Make the delighted spirit glow,
    Till joy denies itself again,
    And, too intense, is turned to pain;
    For by permission and command
    Of thine own Prince Ferdinand, _10
    Poor Ariel sends this silent token
    Of more than ever can be spoken;
    Your guardian spirit, Ariel, who,
    From life to life, must still pursue
    Your happiness;—for thus alone _15
    Can Ariel ever find his own.
    From Prospero's enchanted cell,
    As the mighty verses tell,
    To the throne of Naples, he
    Lit you o'er the trackless sea, _20
    Flitting on, your prow before,
    Like a living meteor.
    When you die, the silent Moon,
    In her interlunar swoon,
    Is not sadder in her cell
    Than deserted Ariel.
    When you live again on earth,
    Like an unseen star of birth,
    Ariel guides you o'er the sea
    Of life from your nativity. _30
    Many changes have been run
    Since Ferdinand and you begun
    Your course of love, and Ariel still
    Has tracked your steps, and served your will;
    Now, in humbler, happier lot, _35
    This is all remembered not;
    And now, alas! the poor sprite is
    Imprisoned, for some fault of his,
    In a body like a grave;—
    From you he only dares to crave, _40
    For his service and his sorrow,
    A smile today, a song tomorrow.

    The artist who this idol wrought,
    To echo all harmonious thought,
    Felled a tree, while on the steep _45
    The woods were in their winter sleep,
    Rocked in that repose divine
    On the wind-swept Apennine;
    And dreaming, some of Autumn past,
    And some of Spring approaching fast, _50
    And some of April buds and showers,
    And some of songs in July bowers,
    And all of love; and so this tree,—
    O that such our death may be!—
    Died in sleep, and felt no pain, _55
    To live in happier form again:
    From which, beneath Heaven's fairest star,
    The artist wrought this loved Guitar,
    And taught it justly to reply,
    To all who question skilfully, _60
    In language gentle as thine own;
    Whispering in enamoured tone
    Sweet oracles of woods and dells,
    And summer winds in sylvan cells;
    For it had learned all harmonies _65
    Of the plains and of the skies,
    Of the forests and the mountains,
    And the many-voiced fountains;
    The clearest echoes of the hills,
    The softest notes of falling rills, _70
    The melodies of birds and bees,
    The murmuring of summer seas,
    And pattering rain, and breathing dew,
    And airs of evening; and it knew
    That seldom-heard mysterious sound, _75
    Which, driven on its diurnal round,
    As it floats through boundless day,
    Our world enkindles on its way.—
    All this it knows, but will not tell
    To those who cannot question well _80
    The Spirit that inhabits it;
    It talks according to the wit
    Of its companions; and no more
    Is heard than has been felt before,
    By those who tempt it to betray _85
    These secrets of an elder day:
    But, sweetly as its answers will
    Flatter hands of perfect skill,
    It keeps its highest, holiest tone
    For our beloved Jane alone. _90

    NOTES:
    _12 Of more than ever]Of love that never 1833.
    _46 woods Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    winds 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
    _58 this Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    that 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
    _61 thine own Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    its own 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
    _76 on Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
    in 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
    _90 Jane Trelawny manuscript; friend 1832, 1833, editions 1839.

    ***


    TO JANE: 'THE KEEN STARS WERE TWINKLING'.



    [Published in part (lines 7-24) by Medwin (under the title, "An Ariette
    for Music. To a Lady singing to her Accompaniment on the Guitar"), "The
    Athenaeum", November 17, 1832; reprinted by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical
    Works", 1839, 1st edition. Republished in full (under the title, To
    —.), "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. The Trelawny manuscript is
    headed "To Jane". Mr. C.W. Frederickson of Brooklyn possesses a
    transcript in an unknown hand.]

    1.
    The keen stars were twinkling,
    And the fair moon was rising among them,
    Dear Jane!
    The guitar was tinkling,
    But the notes were not sweet till you sung them _5
    Again.

    2.
    As the moon's soft splendour
    O'er the faint cold starlight of Heaven
    Is thrown,
    So your voice most tender _10
    To the strings without soul had then given
    Its own.

    3.
    The stars will awaken,
    Though the moon sleep a full hour later,
    To-night; _15
    No leaf will be shaken
    Whilst the dews of your melody scatter
    Delight.

    4.
    Though the sound overpowers,
    Sing again, with your dear voice revealing _20
    A tone
    Of some world far from ours,
    Where music and moonlight and feeling
    Are one.

    NOTES:
    _3 Dear *** 1839, 2nd edition.
    _7 soft]pale Fred. manuscript.
    _10 your 1839, 2nd edition.;
    thy 1832, 1839, 1st edition, Fred. manuscript.
    _11 had then 1839, 2nd edition; has 1832, 1839, 1st edition;
    hath Fred. manuscript.
    _12 Its]Thine Fred. manuscript.
    _17 your 1839, 2nd edition;
    thy 1832, 1839, 1st edition, Fred. manuscript.
    _19 sound]song Fred. manuscript.
    _20 your dear 1839, 2nd edition; thy sweet 1832, 1839, 1st edition;
    thy soft Fred. manuscript.

    ***


    A DIRGE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    Rough wind, that moanest loud
    Grief too sad for song;
    Wild wind, when sullen cloud
    Knells all the night long;
    Sad storm whose tears are vain, _5
    Bare woods, whose branches strain,
    Deep caves and dreary main,—
    Wail, for the world's wrong!

    NOTE:
    _6 strain cj. Rossetti; stain edition 1824.

    ***


    LINES WRITTEN IN THE BAY OF LERICI.



    [Published from the Boscombe manuscripts by Dr. Garnett, "Macmillan's
    Magazine", June, 1862; reprinted, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    She left me at the silent time
    When the moon had ceased to climb
    The azure path of Heaven's steep,
    And like an albatross asleep,
    Balanced on her wings of light, _5
    Hovered in the purple night,
    Ere she sought her ocean nest
    In the chambers of the West.
    She left me, and I stayed alone
    Thinking over every tone _10
    Which, though silent to the ear,
    The enchanted heart could hear,
    Like notes which die when born, but still
    Haunt the echoes of the hill;
    And feeling ever—oh, too much!— _15
    The soft vibration of her touch,
    As if her gentle hand, even now,
    Lightly trembled on my brow;
    And thus, although she absent were,
    Memory gave me all of her _20
    That even Fancy dares to claim:—
    Her presence had made weak and tame
    All passions, and I lived alone
    In the time which is our own;
    The past and future were forgot, _25
    As they had been, and would be, not.
    But soon, the guardian angel gone,
    The daemon reassumed his throne
    In my faint heart. I dare not speak
    My thoughts, but thus disturbed and weak _30
    I sat and saw the vessels glide
    Over the ocean bright and wide,
    Like spirit-winged chariots sent
    O'er some serenest element
    For ministrations strange and far; _35
    As if to some Elysian star
    Sailed for drink to medicine
    Such sweet and bitter pain as mine.
    And the wind that winged their flight
    From the land came fresh and light, _40
    And the scent of winged flowers,
    And the coolness of the hours
    Of dew, and sweet warmth left by day,
    Were scattered o'er the twinkling bay.
    And the fisher with his lamp _45
    And spear about the low rocks damp
    Crept, and struck the fish which came
    To worship the delusive flame.
    Too happy they, whose pleasure sought
    Extinguishes all sense and thought _50
    Of the regret that pleasure leaves,
    Destroying life alone, not peace!

    NOTES:
    _11 though silent Relics 1862; though now silent Mac. Mag. 1862.
    _31 saw Relics 1862; watched Mac. Mag. 1862.

    ***


    LINES: 'WE MEET NOT AS WE PARTED'.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    1.
    We meet not as we parted,
    We feel more than all may see;
    My bosom is heavy-hearted,
    And thine full of doubt for me:—
    One moment has bound the free. _5

    2.
    That moment is gone for ever,
    Like lightning that flashed and died—
    Like a snowflake upon the river—
    Like a sunbeam upon the tide,
    Which the dark shadows hide. _10

    3.
    That moment from time was singled
    As the first of a life of pain;
    The cup of its joy was mingled
    —Delusion too sweet though vain!
    Too sweet to be mine again. _15

    4.
    Sweet lips, could my heart have hidden
    That its life was crushed by you,
    Ye would not have then forbidden
    The death which a heart so true
    Sought in your briny dew. _20

    5.
    ...
    ...
    ...
    Methinks too little cost
    For a moment so found, so lost! _25

    ***


    THE ISLE.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    There was a little lawny islet
    By anemone and violet,
    Like mosaic, paven:
    And its roof was flowers and leaves
    Which the summer's breath enweaves, _5
    Where nor sun nor showers nor breeze
    Pierce the pines and tallest trees,
    Each a gem engraven;—
    Girt by many an azure wave
    With which the clouds and mountains pave _10
    A lake's blue chasm.

    ***


    FRAGMENT: TO THE MOON.



    [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]

    Bright wanderer, fair coquette of Heaven,
    To whom alone it has been given
    To change and be adored for ever,
    Envy not this dim world, for never
    But once within its shadow grew _5
    One fair as—

    ***


    EPITAPH.



    [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]

    These are two friends whose lives were undivided;
    So let their memory be, now they have glided
    Under the grave; let not their bones be parted,
    For their two hearts in life were single-hearted.

    ***


    NOTE ON POEMS OF 1822, BY MRS. SHELLEY.


        This morn thy gallant bark
        Sailed on a sunny sea:
        'Tis noon, and tempests dark
        Have wrecked it on the lee.
        Ah woe! ah woe!
        By Spirits of the deep
        Thou'rt cradled on the billow
        To thy eternal sleep.

        Thou sleep'st upon the shore
        Beside the knelling surge,
        And Sea-nymphs evermore
        Shall sadly chant thy dirge.
        They come, they come,
        The Spirits of the deep,—
        While near thy seaweed pillow
        My lonely watch I keep.

        From far across the sea
        I hear a loud lament,
        By Echo's voice for thee
        From Ocean's caverns sent.
        O list! O list!
        The Spirits of the deep!
        They raise a wail of sorrow,
        While I forever weep.

    With this last year of the life of Shelley these Notes end. They are not what I intended them to be. I began with energy, and a burning desire to impart to the world, in worthy language, the sense I have of the virtues and genius of the beloved and the lost; my strength has failed under the task. Recurrence to the past, full of its own deep and unforgotten joys and sorrows, contrasted with succeeding years of painful and solitary struggle, has shaken my health. Days of great suffering have followed my attempts to write, and these again produced a weakness and languor that spread their sinister influence over these notes. I dislike speaking of myself, but cannot help apologizing to the dead, and to the public, for not having executed in the manner I desired the history I engaged to give of Shelley's writings. (I at one time feared that the correction of the press might be less exact through my illness; but I believe that it is nearly free from error. Some asterisks occur in a few pages, as they did in the volume of "Posthumous Poems", either because they refer to private concerns, or because the original manuscript was left imperfect. Did any one see the papers from which I drew that volume, the wonder would be how any eyes or patience were capable of extracting it from so confused a mass, interlined and broken into fragments, so that the sense could only be deciphered and joined by guesses which might seem rather intuitive than founded on reasoning. Yet I believe no mistake was made.)

    The winter of 1822 was passed in Pisa, if we might call that season winter in which autumn merged into spring after the interval of but few days of bleaker weather. Spring sprang up early, and with extreme beauty. Shelley had conceived the idea of writing a tragedy on the subject of Charles I. It was one that he believed adapted for a drama; full of intense interest, contrasted character, and busy passion. He had recommended it long before, when he encouraged me to attempt a play. Whether the subject proved more difficult than he anticipated, or whether in fact he could not bend his mind away from the broodings and wanderings of thought, divested from human interest, which he best loved, I cannot tell; but he proceeded slowly, and threw it aside for one of the most mystical of his poems, the "Triumph of Life", on which he was employed at the last.

    His passion for boating was fostered at this time by having among our friends several sailors. His favourite companion, Edward Ellerker Williams, of the 8th Light Dragoons, had begun his life in the navy, and had afterwards entered the army; he had spent several years in India, and his love for adventure and manly exercises accorded with Shelley's taste. It was their favourite plan to build a boat such as they could manage themselves, and, living on the sea-coast, to enjoy at every hour and season the pleasure they loved best. Captain Roberts, R.N., undertook to build the boat at Genoa, where he was also occupied in building the "Bolivar" for Lord Byron. Ours was to be an open boat, on a model taken from one of the royal dockyards. I have since heard that there was a defect in this model, and that it was never seaworthy. In the month of February, Shelley and his friend went to Spezia to seek for houses for us. Only one was to be found at all suitable; however, a trifle such as not finding a house could not stop Shelley; the one found was to serve for all. It was unfurnished; we sent our furniture by sea, and with a good deal of precipitation, arising from his impatience, made our removal. We left Pisa on the 26th of April.

    The Bay of Spezia is of considerable extent, and divided by a rocky promontory into a larger and smaller one. The town of Lerici is situated on the eastern point, and in the depth of the smaller bay, which bears the name of this town, is the village of San Terenzo. Our house, Casa Magni, was close to this village; the sea came up to the door, a steep hill sheltered it behind. The proprietor of the estate on which it was situated was insane; he had begun to erect a large house at the summit of the hill behind, but his malady prevented its being finished, and it was falling into ruin. He had (and this to the Italians had seemed a glaring symptom of very decided madness) rooted up the olives on the hillside, and planted forest trees. These were mostly young, but the plantation was more in English taste than I ever elsewhere saw in Italy; some fine walnut and ilex trees intermingled their dark massy foliage, and formed groups which still haunt my memory, as then they satiated the eye with a sense of loveliness. The scene was indeed of unimaginable beauty. The blue extent of waters, the almost landlocked bay, the near castle of Lerici shutting it in to the east, and distant Porto Venere to the west; the varied forms of the precipitous rocks that bound in the beach, over which there was only a winding rugged footpath towards Lerici, and none on the other side; the tideless sea leaving no sands nor shingle, formed a picture such as one sees in Salvator Rosa's landscapes only. Sometimes the sunshine vanished when the sirocco raged—the 'ponente' the wind was called on that shore. The gales and squalls that hailed our first arrival surrounded the bay with foam; the howling wind swept round our exposed house, and the sea roared unremittingly, so that we almost fancied ourselves on board ship. At other times sunshine and calm invested sea and sky, and the rich tints of Italian heaven bathed the scene in bright and ever-varying tints.

    The natives were wilder than the place. Our near neighbours of San Terenzo were more like savages than any people I ever before lived among. Many a night they passed on the beach, singing, or rather howling; the women dancing about among the waves that broke at their feet, the men leaning against the rocks and joining in their loud wild chorus. We could get no provisions nearer than Sarzana, at a distance of three miles and a half off, with the torrent of the Magra between; and even there the supply was very deficient. Had we been wrecked on an island of the South Seas, we could scarcely have felt ourselves farther from civilisation and comfort; but, where the sun shines, the latter becomes an unnecessary luxury, and we had enough society among ourselves. Yet I confess housekeeping became rather a toilsome task, especially as I was suffering in my health, and could not exert myself actively.

    At first the fatal boat had not arrived, and was expected with great impatience. On Monday, 12th May, it came. Williams records the long-wished-for fact in his journal: 'Cloudy and threatening weather. M. Maglian called; and after dinner, and while walking with him on the terrace, we discovered a strange sail coming round the point of Porto Venere, which proved at length to be Shelley's boat. She had left Genoa on Thursday last, but had been driven back by the prevailing bad winds. A Mr. Heslop and two English seamen brought her round, and they speak most highly of her performances. She does indeed excite my surprise and admiration. Shelley and I walked to Lerici, and made a stretch off the land to try her: and I find she fetches whatever she looks at. In short, we have now a perfect plaything for the summer.'—It was thus that short-sighted mortals welcomed Death, he having disguised his grim form in a pleasing mask! The time of the friends was now spent on the sea; the weather became fine, and our whole party often passed the evenings on the water when the wind promised pleasant sailing. Shelley and Williams made longer excursions; they sailed several times to Massa. They had engaged one of the seamen who brought her round, a boy, by name Charles Vivian; and they had not the slightest apprehension of danger. When the weather was unfavourable, they employed themselves with alterations in the rigging, and by building a boat of canvas and reeds, as light as possible, to have on board the other for the convenience of landing in waters too shallow for the larger vessel. When Shelley was on board, he had his papers with him; and much of the "Triumph of Life" was written as he sailed or weltered on that sea which was soon to engulf him.

    The heats set in in the middle of June; the days became excessively hot. But the sea-breeze cooled the air at noon, and extreme heat always put Shelley in spirits. A long drought had preceded the heat; and prayers for rain were being put up in the churches, and processions of relics for the same effect took place in every town. At this time we received letters announcing the arrival of Leigh Hunt at Genoa. Shelley was very eager to see him. I was confined to my room by severe illness, and could not move; it was agreed that Shelley and Williams should go to Leghorn in the boat. Strange that no fear of danger crossed our minds! Living on the sea-shore, the ocean became as a plaything: as a child may sport with a lighted stick, till a spark inflames a forest, and spreads destruction over all, so did we fearlessly and blindly tamper with danger, and make a game of the terrors of the ocean. Our Italian neighbours, even, trusted themselves as far as Massa in the skiff; and the running down the line of coast to Leghorn gave no more notion of peril than a fair-weather inland navigation would have done to those who had never seen the sea. Once, some months before, Trelawny had raised a warning voice as to the difference of our calm bay and the open sea beyond; but Shelley and his friend, with their one sailor-boy, thought themselves a match for the storms of the Mediterranean, in a boat which they looked upon as equal to all it was put to do.

    On the 1st of July they left us. If ever shadow of future ill darkened the present hour, such was over my mind when they went. During the whole of our stay at Lerici, an intense presentiment of coming evil brooded over my mind, and covered this beautiful place and genial summer with the shadow of coming misery. I had vainly struggled with these emotions—they seemed accounted for by my illness; but at this hour of separation they recurred with renewed violence. I did not anticipate danger for them, but a vague expectation of evil shook me to agony, and I could scarcely bring myself to let them go. The day was calm and clear; and, a fine breeze rising at twelve, they weighed for Leghorn. They made the run of about fifty miles in seven hours and a half. The "Bolivar" was in port; and, the regulations of the Health-office not permitting them to go on shore after sunset, they borrowed cushions from the larger vessel, and slept on board their boat.

    They spent a week at Pisa and Leghorn. The want of rain was severely felt in the country. The weather continued sultry and fine. I have heard that Shelley all this time was in brilliant spirits. Not long before, talking of presentiment, he had said the only one that he ever found infallible was the certain advent of some evil fortune when he felt peculiarly joyous. Yet, if ever fate whispered of coming disaster, such inaudible but not unfelt prognostics hovered around us. The beauty of the place seemed unearthly in its excess: the distance we were at from all signs of civilization, the sea at our feet, its murmurs or its roaring for ever in our ears,—all these things led the mind to brood over strange thoughts, and, lifting it from everyday life, caused it to be familiar with the unreal. A sort of spell surrounded us; and each day, as the voyagers did not return, we grew restless and disquieted, and yet, strange to say, we were not fearful of the most apparent danger.

    The spell snapped; it was all over; an interval of agonizing doubt—of days passed in miserable journeys to gain tidings, of hopes that took firmer root even as they were more baseless—was changed to the certainty of the death that eclipsed all happiness for the survivors for evermore.

    There was something in our fate peculiarly harrowing. The remains of those we lost were cast on shore; but, by the quarantine-laws of the coast, we were not permitted to have possession of them—the law with respect to everything cast on land by the sea being that such should be burned, to prevent the possibility of any remnant bringing the plague into Italy; and no representation could alter the law. At length, through the kind and unwearied exertions of Mr. Dawkins, our Charge d'Affaires at Florence, we gained permission to receive the ashes after the bodies were consumed. Nothing could equal the zeal of Trelawny in carrying our wishes into effect. He was indefatigable in his exertions, and full of forethought and sagacity in his arrangements. It was a fearful task; he stood before us at last, his hands scorched and blistered by the flames of the funeral-pyre, and by touching the burnt relics as he placed them in the receptacles prepared for the purpose. And there, in compass of that small case, was gathered all that remained on earth of him whose genius and virtue were a crown of glory to the world—whose love had been the source of happiness, peace, and good,—to be buried with him!

    The concluding stanzas of the "Adonais" pointed out where the remains ought to be deposited; in addition to which our beloved child lay buried in the cemetery at Rome. Thither Shelley's ashes were conveyed; and they rest beneath one of the antique weed-grown towers that recur at intervals in the circuit of the massy ancient wall of Rome. He selected the hallowed place himself; there is

        'the sepulchre,
        Oh, not of him, but of our joy!—
        ...
        And gray walls moulder round, on which dull Time
        Feeds, like slow fire upon a hoary brand;
        And one keen pyramid with wedge sublime,
        Pavilioning the dust of him who planned
        This refuge for his memory, doth stand
        Like flame transformed to marble; and beneath,
        A field is spread, on which a newer band
        Have pitched in Heaven's smile their camp of death,
        Welcoming him we lose with scarce extinguished breath.'

    Could sorrow for the lost, and shuddering anguish at the vacancy left behind, be soothed by poetic imaginations, there was something in Shelley's fate to mitigate pangs which yet, alas! could not be so mitigated; for hard reality brings too miserably home to the mourner all that is lost of happiness, all of lonely unsolaced struggle that remains. Still, though dreams and hues of poetry cannot blunt grief, it invests his fate with a sublime fitness, which those less nearly allied may regard with complacency. A year before he had poured into verse all such ideas about death as give it a glory of its own. He had, as it now seems, almost anticipated his own destiny; and, when the mind figures his skiff wrapped from sight by the thunder-storm, as it was last seen upon the purple sea, and then, as the cloud of the tempest passed away, no sign remained of where it had been (Captain Roberts watched the vessel with his glass from the top of the lighthouse of Leghorn, on its homeward track. They were off Via Reggio, at some distance from shore, when a storm was driven over the sea. It enveloped them and several larger vessels in darkness. When the cloud passed onwards, Roberts looked again, and saw every other vessel sailing on the ocean except their little schooner, which had vanished. From that time he could scarcely doubt the fatal truth; yet we fancied that they might have been driven towards Elba or Corsica, and so be saved. The observation made as to the spot where the boat disappeared caused it to be found, through the exertions of Trelawny for that effect. It had gone down in ten fathom water; it had not capsized, and, except such things as had floated from her, everything was found on board exactly as it had been placed when they sailed. The boat itself was uninjured. Roberts possessed himself of her, and decked her; but she proved not seaworthy, and her shattered planks now lie rotting on the shore of one of the Ionian islands, on which she was wrecked.)—who but will regard as a prophecy the last stanza of the "Adonais"?

        'The breath whose might I have invoked in song
        Descends on me; my spirit's bark is driven,
        Far from the shore, far from the trembling throng
        Whose sails were never to the tempest given;
        The massy earth and sphered skies are riven!
        I am borne darkly, fearfully, afar;
        Whilst burning through the inmost veil of Heaven,
        The soul of Adonais, like a star,
        Beacons from the abode where the Eternal are.'

    Putney, May 1, 1839.